AIDS TO REFLECTION, This makes, that whatsoever here befalls, You in the region of yourself remain Neighb'ring on heaven ; and that no foreign land. Daniel. AIDS TO REFLECTION BY SAMUEL TAYLOR COLERIDGE. EDITED BY The Rev. DERWENT COLERIDGE, M.A. WARD, LOCK, AND CO. LONDON: WARWICK HOUSE, SALISBURY SQUARE, E.C. NEW YORK : BOND STREET. LONDON ! BRADBURY, AGNEW, & CO., PRINTERS, WIIITEFRIARS. By iiiic iwui^a APR 18 1929 j»y and Navy Oi*t» / / /// ADVERTISEMENT. The present Edition of the " Aids to Reflection" is a corrected reprint from the last,* with several additional Notes by the Author, interesting in themselves, and valuable in their connection with the text. It has been deemed of paramount importance to reduce the size and cost of this Edition, so as to bring the work itself within the reach of as large a number, and as various a description, of readers as possible. All extraneous matter has consequently been withdrawn. The preliminary Essay by Dr. Marsh, able and judicious as it is, is no longer so needful, nor indeed quite so applicable, as when it first appeared. The Editor cannot, however, set it aside without * The references narked Ed. are to be assigned to the editor of the first posthumous edition, Henry Nelson Coleridge, whose critical care and judgment every succeeding editor is bound to acknowledge. /yy vi ADVERTISEMENT. paying a tribute of respect to the memory of the writer, while he expresses his obligations both to him and to other learned and enlightened Americans, by whom the name of Coleridge is held in honour, and who have variously contributed to spread the knowledge and facilitate the reception of his religious philosophy. The "Essay on Rationalism," by the late Mrs. Henry Nelson Coleridge, will, it is hoped, be re- produced as an independent treatise with the other literary remains of the lamented writer. The observations on Instinct by Mr. Green, being referred to in the text, are retained. "With this exception, the Author is now left to speak for himself. There is some advantage in this. The "Aids to Reflection" has been long before the world. The subject matter has passed into the public mind through various channels and with divers modifica- tions. A text-book, without comment, may be useful to those who wish to correct or to verify from the original the impressions which they have received at second hand. And as regards the younger student, to whom these " Aids" are more particularly, though by no means exclusively addressed, — the work has a ADVERTISEMENT. vil method of its own, arid it may be well that the reader should find his way through it strictly in the manner prescribed. It is a Jiand-hooJc, capable indeed of indefinite expansion and elucidation, but complete in itself; chargeable with no obscurity, relatively to the subject, and presenting no difficulty separable from the act of reflection. A certain process has to be passed through. It is not needful, and perhaps it is not altogether desirable, that the attention should be directed, or the judg- ment anticipated, by any prestatement, still less by any defence or explanation of the results. DERWEXT COLERIDGE. St. Mark's College, Chelsea. January, 1SS4. ADVERTISEMENT TO THE FOURTH AND FIFTH EDITIONS. This corrected Edition of the Aids to Reflection is commended to Christian readers, in the hope and the trnst that the power which the book has already exer- cised over hundreds, it may, by God's furtherance, here- after exercise over thousands. No age, since Christianity had a name, has more pointedly needed the mental discipline taught in this work than that in which we now live ; when, in the Author's own words, all the great ideas or verities of religion seem in danger of being condensed into idols, or evaporated into meta- phors. Between the encroachments, on the one hand, of those who so magnify means that they practically impeach the supremacy of the ends which those means were meant to subserve ; and of those, on the other hand, who, engrossed in the contemplation of the great Redemptive Act, rashly disregard or depreciate the appointed ordinances of grace ; — between those who, confounding the sensuous Understanding, varying in every individual, with the universal Reason, the image of God, the same in all men, inculcate a so-called faith, having no demonstrated harmony with the attributes of God, or the essential laws of humanity, and being sometimes inconsistent with both ; and those again who requiring a logical proof of that which, though ADVERTISEMENT. [ x not contradicting, does in its very kind, transcend, our reason, virtually deny the existence of true faith altogether ; — between these almost equal enemies of the truth, Coleridge, — in all his works, but pre- eminently in this — has kindled an inextinguishable beacon of warning and of guidance. In so doing, he has taken his stand on the sure word of Scripture, and is supported by the authority of almost every one of our great divines, before the prevalence of that system of philosophy (Locke's), which no consistent reasoner can possibly reconcile with the undoubted meaning of the Articles and Formularies of the English Church : — In causague valet, causamque juvantibus armis. 25tk April, 1S39. This is the fifth Edition of the Aids to Eeflection published in England ; and there have been three in the United States of America. It deserves note, less ' with reference to the Author himself, than to the moral and religious history of this age. Since 1824, when the Work first appeared, the tone has changed, and the senseless imputation of obscurity, and vague- ness, and Germanism — so general then — is now but faintly heard, and in the mouths of sciolists alone. Those who buy this Volume, buy seriously, and because they stand in need. It is found to be clear, and particular, and practical by minds seeking light to enlighten ; and now that the evil side of modern Germanism in religion, — its Pantheistic spirit — is better understood, it will be seen that here is contained its most striking confutation by the side of the firmest x ADVERTISEMENT. assertion of the Evangelical truth. But the Aids to Beflection did not at first suit' all the views of High Churchmen, nor all the views of Low Churchmen ; and it will not suit them now. This is an antagonism, the issue whereof cannot yet be known. Meantime, the cause of religious philosophy has suffered a great loss in America, by the recent death of Dr. Marsh, who, if longer life and better health had been granted him, might have done much. But there are others — fellow-countrymen and pupils of his — upon whom his mantle has fallen. May they prosper ! k. n. a 20*ft OctCOcr. 1S42. THE AUTHOR'S ADDRESS TO THE READER Fellow-Christian ! the wish to be admired as a fine writer held a very subordinate place in my thought a and feelings in the composition of this Volume. Let then its comparative merits and demerits, in respect of style and stimulancy, possess a proportional weight, and no more, in determining your judgment for or against its contents. Read it through : then compare the state of your mind with the state in which your mind was when you first opened the book. Has it led you to reflect ? Has it supplied or suggested fresh subjects for reflection ? Has it given you any new information ? Has it removed any obstacle to a lively conviction of your responsibility as a moral agent ? Has it solved any difficulties, which had impeded your faith as a Christian ? Lastly, has it increased your power of thinking connectedly — especially on the scheme and purpose of the Redemption by Christ ? If it have done none of these things, condemn it aloud as worth- less : and strive to compensate for your own loss of time, by preventing others from wasting theirs. But if your conscience dictates an affirmative answer to all or any of the preceding questions, declare this too *„loud, and endeavour to extend my utility. 1 Out*? toLvtm r*os iavrr.v I'xa.yovcot,, zoti (ruvY.Qooiaru.svYi "^vx^ x MAKINUS. Omnis divlnce atque humance eruditionis elementa tria, Nosse, Vclle, Posse; quorum principium u/ium Mens; cujus oculus Ratio ; Cid lumen * * prcibct Deus. vico. Naturam hominis hanc Deus ipse voluit, ut duarum rerum cupidus et appetens esset, religionis ct sapicrdke. Sed homines idee falluntur, quod, aut religionem suscipiunt omissa sapieniia ; aui sapiential soli student omissa religion* ; cum altcrum sine altcrc esse non poseii vermn. LACTAjmiJP. THE AUTHOR'S PREFACE. An Author has three points to settle : to what sort his work belongs, for what description of readers it is intended, and the specific end or object, which it is to answer. There is indeed a preliminary question re- specting the end which the writer himself has in view, whether the number of purchasers, or the benefit of the readers. But this may be safely passed by ; since where the book itself or the known principles of the writer do not supersede the question, there will seldom be sufficient strength of character for good or for evil to afford much chance of its being either distinctly put or fairly answered. I shall proceed, therefore, to state, as briefly as possible, the intentions of the present Volume in reference to the three first-mentioned points, namel} 1 , What ? For whom ? For what 1 I. What ] The answer is contained in the title- page. It belongs to the class of didactic works. Consequently, those who neither wish instruction for themselves, nor assistance in instructing others, have no interest in its contents. .Sii sus, sis Divas : sum caWta, ct non tibi spiro. II. For whom ? Generally, for as many in all classes as wish for aid in disciplining their minds to habits of XIV THE AUTHOES PBEFACK. reflection ; for all, who desirous of building up a manly character in the light of distinct consciousness, are content to study the principles of moral architecture on the several grounds of prudence, morality, and religion. And lastly, for all who feel an interest in the position which I have undertaken to defend, this, namely, that the Christian Faith is the perfection of human intelligence, — an interest sufficiently strong to insure a patient attention to the arguments brought in its support. But if I am to mention any particular class or description of readers, who were prominent in my thought during the composition of the volume, my reply must be ; that it was especially designed for the studious young at the close of their education or on their first entrance into the duties of manhood and the rights of self-government. And of these, again, in thought and wish I destined the work (the latter and larger portion, at least) yet more particularly to students intended for the ministry ; first, as in duty bound, to the members of our Universities : secondly, (but only in respect of this mental precedency second) to all alike of whatever name, who have dedicated their future lives to the cultivation of their race, as pastors, preachers, missionaries, or instructors of youth. III. For what 1 The worth of an author is esti- mated by the ends, the attainment of which he pro- posed to himself by the particular work ; while the value of the work depends on its fitness, as the means. The objects of the present volume are the following, arranged in the order of their comparative importance. 1. To direct the reader's attention to the value of the science of words, their use and abuse, and the incalculable advantages attached to the habit of using THE AUTHORS PREFACE. sv them appropriately, and with a distinct knowledge of their primary, derivative, and metaphorical senses. And in furtherance of this object I have neglected no occasion of enforcing the maxim, that to expose a sophism and to detect the equivocal or double meaning of a word is, in the great majority of cases, one and the same thing. Home Tooke entitled his celebrated work, v E7rea TTTepoevra, winged words : or language, not only the vehicle of thought, but the wheels. With my convictions and views, for eTrea I should substitute \6yoi, that is, words select and determinate, and for TTTepGevTa tyovTes, that is, living words. The wheels of the intellect I admit them to be : but such as Ezekiel beheld in the visions of God as he sate among the captives by the river of Ghebar. Whithersoever the Spirit was to go, the wheels went, and thither was their Spirit to go : for the Spirit of the living creature was in the wheels also. 2. To establish the distinct characters of prudence morality, and religion : and to impress the conviction, that though the second requires the first, and the third contains and supposes both the former ; yet still moral goodness is other and more than prudence on the principle of expediency ; and religion more and higher than morality. For this distinction the better Schools even of Pagan Philosophy contended. 3. To substantiate and set forth at large the mo- mentous distinction between reason and understanding. Whatever is achievable by the understanding for the purposes of worldly interest, private or public, has in the present age been pursued with an activity and a success beyond all former experience, and to an extent which equally demands my admiration and excites my wonder. But likewise it is, and long has been, my conviction,, that in no age since the first dawning of xv i THE AUTHORS PEEFACE science and philosophy in this island have the truths, interests, and studies which especially belong to the reason, contemplative or practical, sunk into such uttei neglect, not to say contempt, as during the last century. It is therefore one main object of this volume to establish the position, that whoever transfers to the understanding the primacy due to the reason, loses the one and spoils the other. 4. To exhibit a full and consistent scheme of the Christian Dispensation, and more largely of all the peculiar doctrines of the Christian Faith ; and to answer all the objections to the same, which do not originate in a corrupt will rather than an erring judg- ment ; and to do this in a manner intelligible for all who, possessing the ordinary advantages of education, do in good earnest desire to form their religious creed in the light of their own convictions, and to have a reason for the faith which they profess. There are indeed mysteries, in evidence of which no reasons can be brought. But it has been my endeavour to show, that the true solution of this problem is, that these mysteries are reason, reason in its highest form of self- affirmation. Such are the special objects of these Aids to [Re- flection. Concerning the general character of the work, let me be permitted to add the few following sentences. St. Augustine, in one of his Sermons, dis- coursing on a high point of theology, tells his auditors — Sic accipite, ut mereamini intelligere. Fides enim debet prcecedere intellectum, \it sit intellectus fidei proemium. Now without a certain portion of gratuitous and (as it were) experimentative faith in the writer, a reader will scarcely give that degree of continued attention, without which no didactic work worth reading can be read to any wise or profitable purpose. In this sense, THE AUTHORS PREFACE xv ii therefore, and to this extent, every author, who is com- petent to the office he has undertaken, may without arrogance repeat St. Augustine's words in his own right, and advance a similar claim on similar grounds. But I venture no further than to intimate the sentiment at a humble distance, by avowing my belief that he, who seeks instruction in the following pages, will not fail to find entertainment likewise ; but that whoever seeks entertainment only will find neither. Eeader ! — You have been bred in a land abounding with men, able in arts, learning, and knowledges manifold, this man in one, this in another, few in man} r , none in all. But there is one art, of which every man should be master, the art of reflection. If you are not a thinking man, to what purpose are you a man at all 1 In like manner, there is one knowledge, which it is every man's interest and duty to acquire, namely, self-knowledge ; or to what end was man alone, of all animals, endued by the Creator with the faculty of serf-consciousness ? Truly said the Pagan moralist, e ccelo descendlt, TmuQi triavroy. But you are likewise born in a Christian land : and Revelation has provided for you new subjects for- reflection, and new treasures of knowledge, never to be unlocked by him who remains self-ignorant. Self- knowledge is the key to this casket ; and by reflection alone can it be obtained. Reflect on your own thoughts, actions, circumstances, and — which will be of especial aid to you in forming a habit of reflection, — accustom yourself to reflect on the words you use hear, or read> their birth, derivation, and history. For if words are not things, they are living powers, by which the things of most importance to mankind are actuated combined xviii THE AUTHORS PREFACE. and humanised. Finally, by reflection you may draw from the fleeting facts of your worldly trade, art, or profession, a science permanent as your immortal soul ; and make even these subsidiary and preparative to the reception of spiritual truth, " doing as the dyers do, who having first dipt their silks in colours of less value, then give them the last tincture of crimson ia grain." CONTENTS. - Page ADVERTISEMENT .V „ TO THE FOURTH AND EIFTH EDITIONS • Ylii AUTHOR'S ADDRESS TO THE READER ' . xi „ PREFACE . . . . ~ . . . . xiii AIDS TO REFLECTION. INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS . . . . 1 OX SENSIBILITY . . . ... . . 25 PRUDENTIAL APHORISMS 30 MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS . . . . 39 ELEMENTS OF RELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY ... 99 APHORISMS ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION . . . . 108 APHORISMS ON THAT WHICH 13 INDEED SPIRITUAL RELIGION. . ' . . . . .114 ON THE DIFFERENCE IN KIND OF REASON AND THE UNDERSTANDING .... .167 ON INSTINCT IN CONNECTION " WITH THE UNDER- STANDING . I9i ON ORIGINAL SIN 205 SX CONTENTS, Pa?e AIDS TO REFLECTION. ON REDEMPTION 274 ON BAPTISM 298 CONCLUSION 321 APPENDIX. A. SUMMARY OF ARGUMENT ON REASON AND THE UNDERSTANDING 344 P. ON INSTINCT; BY J. H. GREEN . . , ,315 AIDS TO REFLECTION. INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. APHORISM I. In philosophy equally as in poetry, it is the highest and most useful prerogative of genius to produce the strongest impressions of novelty, while it rescues admitted truths from the neglect caused by the very circumstance of their universal admission. Extremes meet. Truths, of all others the most awful and in- teresting, are too often considered as so true, that they lose all the power of truth, and lie bed-ridden in the dormitory of the soul, side by side with the most despised and exploded errors APHORISM II. There is one sure way of giving freshness and im- portance to the most common-place maxims — that of reflecting on them in direct reference to our own state and conduct, to our own past and future being. APHORISM III. To restore a common-place truth to its first B Q AIDS TO BEFLECTJON, uncommon lustre, you need only translate it into action But to do this, you must have reflected on its truth. APHORISM IV. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. It is the advice of the wise man, " Dwell at home," or, with yourself; and though there are very few that do this, yet it is surprising that the greatest part of mankind cannot be prevailed upon, at least to visit themselves sometimes ; but, according to the saying of the wise Solomon, The eyes of the fool are in the ends of the earth. A reflecting mind, says an ancient writer, is the spring and source of every good thing. " Omnis boni prlncipium intellectus cogitabundus." It is at once the disgrace and the misery of men, that they live without forethought. Suppose yourself fronting a inirror. Now what the objects behind you are to their images at the same apparent distance before you, such is reflection to fore-thought. As a man without fore-thought scarcely deserves the name of a man, so fore-thought without reflection is but a metaphorical phrase for the instinct of a beast. APHORISM V. As a fruit-tree is more valuable than any one of its fruits singly, or even than all its fruits of a single season, so the noblest object of reflection is the mind itself, by which we reflect. And as the blossoms, the green and the ripe fruit of an orange-tree are more beautiful to behold when on the tree and seen as one with it, than the same growth detached and seen successively, after their importation into another country and different clime : ENTBODUCTOBY APHORISMS. 3 so it is wiili the manifold objects of reflection, when they are considered principally in reference to the reflective power, and as part and parcel of the same. Xo object, of whatever value our passions may repre- sent it, but becomes foreign to us as soon as it is altogether unconnected with our intellectual, moral, and spiritual life. To be ours, it must be referred to the mind either as motive, or consequence, or symptom. APHORISM ft LEIGHTON. He who teaches men the principles and precepts of spiritual wisdom, before their minds are called off from foreign objects, and turned inward upon them- selves, might as well write his instructions, as the Sibyl wrote her prophecies, on the loose leaves of trees, and commit them to the mercy of the incon- stant winds. APHORISM VII. In order to learn, we must attend: in order to profit by what we have learnt, we must think — that is, reflect. He only thinks who reflects.* APHORISM VIII. LEIGHT02? AST) COLERIDGE. It is a matter of great difficulty, and requires no ordinary skill and address, to fix the attention of * The indisposition, nay, the angry aversion to think, even in persons who are most willing to attend, and on the subjects to which they are giving studious attention, as political economy, Biblical theology, classical antiquities, and the like, — is the fact that forces itself on my notice afresh, every time I enter into the society of persons in the b2 4 AIDS TO REFLECTION. men on the world within them, to induce them to study the processes and superintend the works which they are the nisei ves carrying on in their own mindr, ; in short, to awaken in them both the faculty of thought* and the inclination to exercise it. For, alas ! the largest part of mankind are nowhere greater strangers than at home. APHORISM IX. Life is the one universal soul, which, by virtue of the enlivening Breath and the informing Word, all organised bodies have in common, each after its kind. This, therefore, all animals possess, and man as an animal. But, in addition to this, God trans- fused into man a higher gift, and specially im- higher ranks. To assign a feeling and a determination of will, as a satisfactory reason for embracing or rejecting this or that opinion or belief, is of ordinary occurrence, and sure to obtain the sympathy and the suffrages of the com- pany. And yet to me this seems little less irrational than to apply the nose to a picture, and to decide on its genuineness by the sense of smell. * Distinction between Thought and Attention. — By Thought is here meant the voluntary reproduction in our minds of those states of consciousness, to which, as to his best and most authentic documents, the teacher of moral or religious truth refers us. In attention, we keep the mind passive : in thought we rouse it into activity. In the former, we submit to an impression — we keep the mind steady, in order to receive the stamp. In the latter, we seek to imitate the artist, while we ourselves make a copy or duplicate of his work. "VVe may learn arithmetic or the elements of geometry by continued attention alone; but self-knowledge, or an insight into the laws and constitution of the human mind and the grounds of religion and true morality, in addition to the effort of attention, requires the energy of thought. INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 5 breathed : — even a living (that is, self-subsisting) soul, a soul having its life in itself. And man be- came a living soul. He did not merely possess it, he became it. It was his proper being, his truest self, the man in the man. None then, not one of human kind, so poor and destitute, but there is pro- vided for him, even in his present state, a house not built with hands; ay, and spite of the philosophy (falsely so called) which mistakes the causes, the conditions, and the occasions of our becoming con- scious of certain truths and realities for the truths and realities themselves — a house gloriously fur- nished. Nothing is wanted bat the eye, which is the light of this house, the light which is the eye of this soul. This seeing light, this enlightening eye, is reflection.* It is more, indeed, than is ordinarily meant by that word ; but it is what a Christian ought to mean by it, and to know too, whence it first came, and still continues to come — of what light even this light is but a reflection. This, too, is thought ; and all thought is but unthinking that does not flow out of this, or tend towards it. APHORISM X. Self-superintendence ! that any thing should over- look itself! Is not this a paradox, and hard to understand ? It is, indeed, difficult, and to the im- bruted sensualist a direct contradiction : and yet most truly does the poet exclaim, Unless above himself he can Erect himself, how mean a thing is man ! * The diavoia of St. John, 1 v. 20, inadequately rendered understanding in our translation. To exhibit the full force of the Greek word, we must say, a 'power of discernment by reason. AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XI. An hour of solitude passed in sincere and earnest prayer, or the conflict with, and conquest over, a single passion or " subtle bosom sin," will teach us more of thought, will more effectually awaken the faculty, and form the habit, of reflection, than a year's study in the Schools without them. APHORISM XII. In a world, the opinions of which are drawn from outside shows, many things may be paradoxical, (that is, contrary to the common notion) and never- theless true : nay, because they are true. How should it be otherwise, as long as the imagination of the worldling is wholly occupied by surfaces, while the Christian's thoughts are fixed on the substance, that which is and abides, and which, because it is the substance/ 1 " the outward senses cannot recognise. Tertullian had good reason for his assertion, that the simplest Christian (if indeed a Christian) knows more than the most accomplished irreligious philo- sopher COMMENT. Let it not, however, be forgotten, that the powers of the understanding and the intellectual graces are * Quod stat subtus, that which stands beneath, and (as it were) supports, the appearance. In a language like our3, so many words of which are derived from other languages, there are few modes of instruction more useful or more amusing than that of accustoming young people to seek for the etymology, or primary meaning of the words they use. There are cases, in which more knowledge of more value may be conveyed by the history of a word, than by the history of a campaign. INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 7 precious gifts of God ; and that every Christian, ac- cording to the opportunities vouchsafed to him, is bound to cultivate the one and to acquire the other. Indeed, he is scarcely a Christian who wilfully neg- lects so to do. What says the Apostle ? Add to your faith knowledge, and to knowledge manly energy, — APHORISM XIII. Never yet did there exist a full faith in the Divine Word (by whom light, as well as immortality, was brought into the world), which did not expand the intellect, while it purified the heart ; — which did not multiply the aims and objects of the understanding, while it fixed and simplified those of the desires and passions. f COMMENT. If acquiescence without insight ; if warmth with- out light ; if an immunity from doubt, given and guaranteed by a resolute ignorance ; if the habit of taking for granted the words of a catechism, remem- bered or forgotten ; if a mere sensation of positive- ness substituted — I will not say for the sense of cer- tainty, but — for that calm assurance, the very means * 2 Pet, ii. 5.— Ed. f The effects of a zealous ministry on the intellects and acquirements of the labouring classes are not only attested by Baxter, and the Presbyterian divines, but admitted by Bishop Burnet, who, during his mission in the west of Scot- land, was " amazed to find a poor commonalty so able to argue," &c. But we need not go to a sister church for proof or example. The diffusion of light and knowledge through this kingdom, by the exertions of the bishops and clergy, by Episcopalians and Puritans, from Edward VI. to the Kesto- ration, was as wonderful as it is praiseworthy, and may be justly placed among the most remarkable facts in history. 8 AIDS TO REFLECTION. and conditions of which it supersedes ; if a belief that seeks the darkness, and yet strikes no root, im- moveable as the limpet from the rock, and, like the ]impet, fixed there by mere force of adhesion; — if these suffice to make men Christians, in what sense could the Apostle affirm that believers receive, not indeed worldly wisdom, which comes to nought, but the wisdom of God, that we might know and com- prehend the things that are freely given to us of God? On what grounds could he denounce the sincerest fervour of spirit as defective, where it does not likewise bring forth fruits in the understanding ? APHORISM XIV. In our present state, it is little less than impossible that the affections should be kept constant to an object which gives no employment to the under- standing, and yet cannot be made manifest to the senses. The exercise of the reasoning and reflecting powers, increasing insight, and enlarging views, are requisite to keep alive the substantial faith in the heart. APHORISM XV. In the state of perfection, perhaps, all other fa- culties may be swallowed up in love, or superseded by immediate vision ; but it is on the wings of the cherubim, that is (according to the interpretation of the ancient Hebrew doctors), the intellectual powers and energies, that we must first be borne up to the " pure empyrean." It must be seraphs, and not the hearts of imperfect mortals, that can burn unfuelled and self-fed. Give me understanding (is the prayer of the royal Psalmist), and I shall observe thy law with my whole heart. — Thy law is exceeding broad INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 9 —that is, comprehensive, pregnant, containing' far more than the apparent import of the words on a first perusal. — It is my meditation all the day* COMMENT. It is worthy of especial observation, that the Scrip- tures are distinguished from all other writings pre- tending to inspiration, by the strong and frequent recommendations of knowledge, and a spirit of in- quiry. Without reflection, it is evident that neither the one can he acquired nor the other exercised, APHORISM XYL The word rational has been strangely abused of late times. This must not, however, disincline us to the weighty consideration, that thoughtfulness, and a desire to bottom all our convictions on grounds of right reason, are inseparable from the character of a Christian. APHORISM XVII. A. reflecting mind is not a flower that grows wild, or comes up of its own accord. The difficulty is indeed greater than many, who mistake quick recol- lection for thought, are disposed to admit ; but how much less than it would be, had we not been born and bred in a Christian and Protestant land, few of us are sufficiently aware. Truly may we, and thank- fully ought we to, exclaim with the Psalmist : The entrance of thy words giveth light; it giveth under standing to the simple.] APHORISM XVHI. Examine the journals of our zealous missionaries, * Ps. cxix. — Ed. + Ps. cxix. — Ed. 10 AIDS TO REFLECTION'. I will not say among the Hottentots or Esquimaux, - but in the highly civilised, though fearfully uncul- tivated, inhabitants of ancient India. How often, and how feelingly, do they describe the difficulty of rendering the simplest chain of thought intelligible to the ordinary natives, the rapid exhaustion of their whole power of attention, and with what distressful effort it is exerted while it lasts ! Yet it is among these that the hideous practices of self-torture chiefly prevail. if folly were no easier than wisdom, it being often so very much more grievous, how cer- tainly might these unhappy slaves of superstition be converted to Christianity ! But, alas ! to swing by hooks passed through the back, or to walk in shoes with nails of iron pointed upwards through the soles — all this is so much less difficult, demands so much less exertion of the will than to reflect, and by re- flection to gain knowledge and tranquillity ! COMMENT. It is not true, that ignorant persons have no notion of the advantages of truth and knowledge. They con- fess, they see and bear witness too, these advantages in the conduct, the immunities, and the superior powers of the possessors. Were they attainable by pilgrimages the most toilsome, or penances the most painful, we should assuredly have as many pilgrims and self- tormentors in the service of true religion, as now exist under the tyranny of Papal or Brahman superstition. APHORISM XIX In countries enlightened by the Gospel, however, the most formidable and (it is to be feared) the most frequent impediment to men's turning their minds in- wards upon themselves, is that they are afraid of what INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS, ]] they shall find there. There is an aching hollowness in the bosom, a dark cold speck at the heart, an obscure and boding sense of a somewhat, that must be kept out of sight of the conscience ; some secret lodger, whom they can neither resolve to eject or retain.* COMMENT. Few are so obdurate, few have sufficient strength of character, to be able to draw forth an evil tendency or immoral practice into distinct consciousness, without bringing it in the same moment before an awaking conscience. But for this very reason it be- comes a duty of conscience to form the mind to a habit of distinct consciousness. An unreflecting Christian walks in twilight among snares and pit- falls ! He entreats the heavenly Father not to lead him into temptation, and yet places himself on the very edge of it, because he will not kindle the torch * The following Sonnet from Herbert's " Temple" may serve as a forcible comment on the words in the text : — GRACES VOUCHSAFED IN A CHRISTIAN LAND. Lord ! with what care hast thou begirt us round ! Parents first season us. Then schoolmasters Deliver us to laws. They send us bound To rules of reason. Holy messengers : Pulpits and Sundays ; sorrow dogging sin ; Afflictions sorted ; anguish of all sizes ; Fine nets and stratagems to catch us in ! Bibles laid open ; millions of surprises ; Blessings beforehand ; ties of gratefulness ; The sound of glory ringing in our ears : Without, our shame ; within, our consciences; Angels and grace'; eternal hopes and fears ! Yet all these fences, and their whole array, One cunning bosom sin blows quite away. \2 AIDS TO REFLECTION. which his Father had given into his hands, as a mean of prevention, and lest he should pray too late. APHORISM XX. Among the various undertakings of men, can there be mentioned one more important, can there be con- ceived one more sublime, than an intention to form the human mind anew after the Divine Image? The very intention, if it be sincere, is a ray of its dawning. The requisites for the execution of this high intent may be comprised under three heads ; the prudential, the moral, and the spiritual. APHORISM XXI. First, Religious Prudence. — What this is, will be best explained by its effects and operations. Pru- dence, in the service of religion, consists in the pre- vention or abatement of hindrances and distractions ; and consequently in avoiding, or removing, all such circumstances as, by diverting the attention of the workman, retard the progress and hazard the safety of the work. It is likewise (I deny not) a part of this unworldly prudence, to place ourselves as much and as often as it is in our power so to do, in cir- cumstances directly favourable to our great design ; and to avail ourselves of all the positive helps and furtherances which these circumstances afford. But neither dare w 7 e, as Christians, forget whose and under what dominion the things are, quce nos cir- cumstant, that is, which stand around us. We are to remember, that it is the world that constitutes our outward circumstances ; that in the form of the world which is evermore at variance with the divine form or idea, they are cast and moulded ; and that of the means and measures which prudence requires INTRODUCTORY APHORISM. 13 in the forming anew of the divine image in the soul, the greatest part supposes the world at enmity with our design. We are to avoid its snares, to repel its attacks, to suspect its aids and succours, and even when compelled to receive them as allies within our trenches, yet to commit the outworks alone to their charge, and to keep them at a jealous distance from the citadel. The powers of the world are often christened, but seldom christianised. They are but proselytes of the outer gate : or, like the Saxons of old, enter the land as auxiliaries, and remain in it as conquerors and lords APHORISM XXII. The rules of prudence, in general, like the laws of the stone tables, are for the most part prohibitive. Thou shalt not is their characteristic formula : and it is an especial part of Christian prudence that it should be so. Nor would it he difficult to bring under this head all the social obligations that arise out of the relations of the present life, which the sensual understanding [to (ppovrjfjLa rrjs crapKos, Rom. viii. 6.) is of itself able to discover, and the performance of which, under favourable circumstances, the merest worldly self-interest, without love or faith, is sufficient to enforce ; but which Christian prudence enlivens by a higher principle, and renders symbolic and sacra- mental. (Eph. v. 32.) This, then, under the appellation of prudential requisites, comes first under consideration ; and may be regarded as the shrine and framework for the divine image, into which the worldly human is to be transformed. We are next to bring out the divine 14 AIDS TO REFLECTION, portrait itself, the distinct features of its countenance, as a sojourner among men ; its benign aspect turned towards its fellow-pilgrims, the extended arm, and the hand that blesseth and healetb, APHORISM XXIII. The outward service (Oprj or Keia^) of ancient religion, the rites, ceremonies, and ceremonial vestments of the old law, had morality for their substance. They ^ r ere the letter, of which morality was the spirit ; the enigma, of which morality was the meaning. But morality itself is the service and ceremonial (cultus exterior, Opiqo-Keia) of the Christian religion. The scheme of grace and truth that became \ through * See the epistle of St. James, i. 26, 27, where, in the authorised version, the Greek word OpTjaKeia is rendered religion. This is, or at all events, for the English reader of our times, has the effect of an erroneous translation. It not only obscures the connexion of the passage, and weakens the peculiar force and sublimity of the thought, rendering it comparatively flat and trivial, almost indeed tautological, but has occasioned this particular verse to be perverted into a support of a very dangerous error ; and the whole epistle to be considered as a set-off against the epistles and declara- tions of St. Paul, instead of (what in fact it is) a masterly comment and confirmation of the same. I need not inform the reader, that James i. 27, is the favourite text and most boasted authority of those divines who represent the Re- deemer of the world as little more than a moral reformer, and the Christian faith as a code of ethics, differing from the moral system of Moses and the Prophets by an additional motive, or rather by the additional strength and clearness which the historical fact of the resurrection has given to the same motive. f The Greek word tyivero unites in itself the two senses of began to exist and was made to exist. It exemplifies the force of the middle voice, in distinction from the verb reflex. INTBODUCTOBY APHORISMS. 13 Jesus Christ, the faith that looks * down into the perfect law of liberty, has light for its garment ; its very robe is righteousness. The same word is used in the same sense by Aristophanes in that famous parody on the cosmogonies of the mythic poeta, or the creation of the finite, as delivered, or supposed to be delivered, in the Cabiric or Samothracian mysteries, in the Comedy of the Birds. . — 7«/€t' Ovoauos i &K$ai'6s ts Ka! Trj. * James i. 25. s O 5e Trapantyas etj vofxov reAeiov rhv trjs iAevdepias. Hapaictyas signifies the incurvation or bending of the body in the act of looking down into ; as, for instance, in the endeavour to see the reflected image of a star in the water at the bottom of a well. A more happy or forcible word could not have been chosen to express the nature and ultimate object of reflection, and to enforce the necessity of it, in order to discover the living fountain and spring-head of the evidence of the Christian faith in the believer himself, and at the same time to point out the seat and region where alone it is to be found. Quantum sumus scimus. That which we find within ourselves, which is more than ourselves, and yet the ground of whatever is good and permanent therein, is the substance and life of all other knowledge. N.B. The Familists of the sixteenth century, and similar enthusiasts of later date, overlooked the essential point, that it was a law, and a law that involved its own end (re'Aos), a perfect law (reAeios) or law that perfects or completes itself; and therefore its obligations are called, in reference to human statutes, imperfect duties, that is, incoercible from without. They overlooked that it was a law that portions out (vofxos from ve^a) to allot, or make division of) to each man the sphere and limits, within which it is to be ex- ercised — which as St. Peter notices of certain profound pas- sages in the writings of St. Paul (2 Pet. iii. 16), ol ajj.ade7s koI a(JT7}pLKT0l, (TTp£fi\OV(nV, WS Kdl TO.S KOLTTaS ypCKptitS, TTpOS T1]V Additional note. For a rational agent the obligation of a 16 AIDS TO REFLECTION. Herein the Apostle places the pre-eminence, the peculiar and distinguishing excellence, of the Chris- tian religion. The ritual is of the same kind, (dfJLOOvcnov) though not of the same order, with the religion itself — not arbitrary or conventional, as types and hieroglyphics are in relation to the things ex- pressed by them ; but inseparable, consubstantiated (as it were), and partaking therefore of the same life, permanence, and intrinsic worth with its spirit and principle APHORISM XXIV. Morality is the body, of which the faith in Christ is the soul — so far indeed its earthly body, as it is adapted to its state of warfare on earth, and the appointed form and instrument of its communion with the present world ; yet not " terrestrial," nor of the world, but a celestial body, and capable of being transfigured from glory to glory, in accordance with the varying circumstances and outward relations of its moving and informing spirit. APHORISM XXV. Woe to the man, who will believe neither power, freedom, nor morality, because he nowhere finds either entire, or unmixed with sin, thraldom and in- firmity. In the natural and intellectual realms, we law is coeval and commensurate with the perception of its lawfulness. Only on this ground is he a moral agent : in this consists the possibility of any morality at all. The mind can scarcely conceive a grosser absurdity, than U) separate the Law and the Obligation, to seek the source and seat of the one in the divine of our nature, and of the other in the beast INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 17 distinguish what we cannot separate ; and in the moral world, we must distinguish in order to separate. Yea, in the clear distinction of good from evil the process of separation commences COMMENT. It was customary with religious men in former times, to make a rule of taking every morning some text, or aphorism,* for their occasional meditation during the day, and thus to fill up the intervals of their attention to business. I do not point it out for imi- tation, as knowing too well, how apt these self-imposed rules are to degenerate into superstition or hollowness; otherwise I would have recommended the following as the first exercise. APHORISM XXVI. It is a dull and obtuse mind, that must divide in order to distinguish ; but it is a still worse, that dis- tinguishes in order to divide. In the former, we may contemplate the source of superstition and idolatry ; f * ApJwrism, determinate position, from acpopi(*ii>, to bound, or limit; whence our horizon. — In order to get the full sense of a word, we should first present to our minds the visual image that forms its primary meaning. Draw lines of different colours round the different counties of England, and then cut out each separately, as in the common play-maps that children take to pieces and put together — so that each district can be contemplated apart from the rest, as a whole in itself. This twofold act of circumscribing, and detaching, when it is exerted by the mind on subjects of reflection and reason, is to aphorise, and the result an aphorism. *T Tb potjtov SiripriKCKTLv els rro Wcou Oecvu iBiOTrjras. — Damasc. de Myst. Egypt. ; that is, They divided the intelligible into many and several individualities; C 18 AIDS TO REFLECTION. in the latter of schism, heresy, and a seditious and sectarian spirit/ 1 " APHORISM XXVII. Exclusively of the abstract sciences, the largest and worthiest portion of our knowledge consists of aphorisms : and the greatest and best of men is but an aphorism. APHORISM XXVIII. On the prudential influence which the fear or foresight of the consequences of his actions, in respect of his own loss or gain, may exert on a newly converted believer. Precautionary remark. — I meddle not with the dispute respecting conversion, whether, and in what sense, necessary in all Christians. It is sufficient for my purpose, that a very large number of men, even in Christian countries, need to be converted, and that not a few, I trust, have been. The tenet becomes fanatical and dangerous, only when rare and extraordinary exceptions are made to be the general rule ; — when what was vouchsafed to the Apostle of the Gentiles by especial grace, and for an especial purpose, namely, a conversion f begun and completed * I mean these words in their large and philosophic sense in relation to the spirit, or originating temper and tendency, and not to any one mode under which, or to any one class in or by which, it may be displayed. A seditious spirit may (it is possible, though not probable) exist in the council- chamber of a palace as strongly as in a mob in Palace -yard ; and a sectarian spirit in a cathedral, no less than in a con- venticle. f " In this sense, especially, doth St. Paul call himself abortivum, a person born out of season, that whereas Christ's other disciples and apostles had a breeding under him, and came first ad discipulatum, and then ad apostolatum, first to I1NTE0DUCT0RY APHOEISMS. 19 in the same moment, is demanded or expected of all men, as a necessary sign and pledge of their election. Late observations have shown, that under many cir- cumstances the magnetic needle, even after the disturbing influence has been removed, will continue wavering, and require many days before it points aright, and remains steady to the pole. So is it ordi- narily with the soul, after it has begun to free itself from the disturbing forces of the flesh, and the world, and to convert* itself towards God. APHORISM XXIX. Awakened by the cock-crow — (a sermon, a cala- mity, a sick-bed, or a providential escape) — the Christian pilgrim sets out in the morning twilight, while yet the truth (the vojjlos reXeios 6 rfjs e/\e?;0e- pias) is below the horizon. Certain necessary con- sequences of his past life and his present undertaking will be seen by the refraction of its light : more will be apprehended and conjectured. The phantasms, that had predominated during the hours of darkness, are still busy. Though they no longer present them- selves as distinct forms, they yet remain as formative motions in the pilgrim's soul, unconscious of its own activity and over-mastered by its own workmanship, be disciples, and after to be apostles. St. Paul was bom a man, an apostle ; not carved out as the rest, in time, but a fusile apostle, an apostle poured out and cast in a mould. As Adam was a perfect man in an instant, so was St. Paul an apostle as soon as Christ took him in hand." Donne's Sena. (vol. ii. p. 299. Alford's edit. Ed.) The same spirit was the lightning that melted, and the mould that received and shaped him. * That is, by an act of the will to turn towards the true pole, at the same time that the understanding is convinced and made aware of its existence and direction. c 2 •-0 AIDS TO REFLECTION Tilings take the signature of thought. The shapes of the recent dream hecome a mould for the objects in the distance, and these again give an outwardness and sensation of reality to the shapings of the dream. The bodings inspired by the long habit of selfishness, and self-seeking cunning, though they are now com- mencing the process of their purification into that fear which is the beginning of wisdom, and which, as such, is ordained to be our guide and safeguard, till the sun of love, the perfect law of liberty, is fully arisen — these bodings will set the fancy at work, and haply, for a time, transform the mists of dim and imperfect knowledge into determinate superstitions. But in either case, whether seen clearly or dimly, whether beholden or only imagined, the consequences contemplated in their bearings on the individual's inherent * desire of happiness and dread of pain * The following extract from the second of Leighton's " Theological Lectures," may serve as a comment on this sentence : — "Yet the human mind, however stunned and weakened by so dreadful a fall, still retains some faint idea, some con- fused and obscure notions, of the good it has lost, and some remaining seeds of its heavenly original. It has also still remaining a kind of languid sense of its misery and indi- gence, with affections suitable to those obscure notions. This at least is beyond all doubt and indisputable, that all men wish well to themselves; nor can the mind of man divest itself of this propensity, without divesting itself of its being. This is what the Schoolmen mean when in their manner of expression they say, that ' the will {voluntas not aroitrium) is carried towards happiness, not simply as will, but as nature/ " I venture to remark that this position, if not more cer- tainly, would be more evidently, true, if instead of beatitudo the word indolentia (that is, freedom from pain, negative happiness) had been used. But this depends on the exact INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 21 become motives ; and, unless all distinction in the words be done away with, and either prudence or virtue be reduced to a superfluous synonyme, a redun- dancy in all the languages of the civilised world, these motives and the acts and forbearances directly proceeding from them fall under the head of Prudence, as belonging to one or other of its four very distinct species. I. It may be a prudence, that stands in opposition to a higher moral life, and tends to preclude it, and to prevent the soul from ever arriving at the hatred of sin for its own exceeding sinfulness [Rom. vii. 13): and this is an evil prudence. II. Or it may be a neutral prudence, not incom- patible with spiritual growth : and to this we may, with especial propriety, apply the words of our Lord, What is not against us is for us. It is therefore an innocent, and (being such) a proper, and commendable prudence. III. Or it may lead and be subservient to a higher principle than itself. The mind and conscience of the individual may be reconciled to it, in the fore- knowledge of the higher principle, and with yearning towards it that implies a foretaste of future freedom. The enfeebled convalescent is reconciled to his meaning attached to the term " self/' of which more in another place. One conclusion, however, follows inevitably from the preceding position: namely, that this propensity can never be legitimately made the principle of morality, even because it is no part or appurtenance of the moral will : and because the proper object of the moral principle is to limit and control this propensity, and to determine in what it may be, and what it ought to be, gratified : while it is the business of philosophy to instruct the understanding, and the office of religion to convince the whole man, that other- wise than as a regulated, and of course therefore a subordi- nate, end, this propensity innate and inalienable though it be ; can never be realised or fulfilled. 22 AIDS TO REFLECTION. crutches, and thankfully makes use of them, not only because the} T are necessary for his immediate support, but likewise, because they are the means and condi- tions of exercise, and by exercise, of establishing, gradaiini paulatim, that strength, flexibility, and almost spontaneous obedience of the muscles, which the idea and cheering presentiment of health hold out to him. He finds their value in their present necessity, and their worth as they are the instruments of finally superseding it. This is a faithful, a wise prudence, having, indeed, its birth-place in the world, and the wisdom of this world for its father ; but natu- ralised in a better land, and having the wisdom from above for its sponsor and spiritual parents. To steal a dropt feather from the spicy nest of the phoenix, (the fond humour, I mean, of the mystic divines and allegorisers of Holy Writ) — it is the son of Terah from Ur of the Chaldees, who gives a tithe of all to the King of Righteousness, without father, without mother, without descent (v6\xos clvtovoijlos), and receives a blessing on the remainder. IV. Lastly, there is a prudence that co-exists with morality, as morality co-exists with the spiritual life : a prudence that is the organ of both, as the under- standing is to the reason and the will, or as the lungs are to the heart and brain. This is a holy prudence, the steward faithful and discreet {oIkovoixos Trtcrro? koI (bpovLfjios, Lake xii. 42) the eldest servant in the family of faith, born in the house, and made the ruler over Ids lord's household. Let not then, I entreat you, my purpose be misun- derstood ; as if, in distinguishing virtue from pru- dence, I wished to divide the one from the other. True morality is hostile to that prudence only, which is preclusive of true morality. The teacher, who sub- ordinates prudence to virtue, cannot be supposed to INTRODUCTORY APHORISMS. 23 dispense with virtue; and he, who teaches the proper connexion of the one with the other, does not depre- ciate the lower in any sense ; while, by making it a link of the same chain with the higher, and receiving the same influence, he raises it. In general, morality may be compared to the con- sonant ; prudence to the vowel. The former cannot be uttered (reduced to practice) but by means of the latter. APHORISM XXX. What the duties of morality are, the Apostle instructs the believer in full, comprising them under the two heads of negative and positive ; negative, to keep himself pure from the world; and positive, beneficence from loving-kindness, that is, love of his fellow T -men (his kind) as himself. APHORISM XXXI. Last and highest come the spiritual, comprising all the truths, acts, and duties, that have an especial reference to the timeless, the permanent, the eternal, to the sincere love of the true as truth, of the good as good, and of God as both in one. It comprehends the whole ascent from uprightness (morality, virtue, inward rectitude) to godlikeness, with all the acts, exercises, and disciplines of mind, will, and affection, that are requisite or conducive to the great design of our redemption from the form of the evil One, and of our second creation or birth in the divine image.* * It is worthy of observation, and may furnish a fruitful subject for future reflection, how nearly the Scriptural divi- sion coincides with the Platonic, which commencing with the prudential, or the habit of act and purpose proceeding from enlightened self-interest [qui animi imperio, corporis servitio, rerum auxilio, inr>roprium sui commodum et sibi providus utitur, hunc esse prudentem statuirnus], ascends to the moral, that is, 24 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XXXII. It may be an additional aid to reflection, to distin- guish the three kinds severally, according to the / faculty to which each corresponds, the part of our human nature which is more particularly its organ. Thus : the prudential corresponds to the sense and the understanding ; the moral to the heart and the conscience ; the spiritual to the will and the reason, that is, to the finite will reduced to harmony with, and in subordination to, the reason, as a ray from that true light which is both reason and will, universal reason, and will absolute. to the purifying and remedial virtues ; and seeks its summit in the imitation of the divine nature. In this last division, answering to that which we have called the spiritual, Plato includes all those inward acts and aspirations, waitings, and watchings, which have a growth in godlikeness for their immediate purpose, and the union of the human soul with the supreme good as their ultimate object. Nor was it altogether without grounds that several of the Fathers ventured to believe that Plato had some dim conception of the necessity of a divine Mediator; — whether through some indistinct echo of the Patriarchal faith, or some rays of light refracted from the Hebrew Prophets through the Phoenician medium (to which he may possibly have referred in his phrase 0€oirapaS6Tos (rocpia, the wisdom delivered from God), or by his own sense of the mysterious contradiction in human nature between the will and the reason, the natural appe- tences and the not less innate law of conscience (Romans ii. 14, 15), we shall in vain attempt to determine. It is not impossible that all three may have co-operated in partially unveiling these awful truths to this plank from the wreck of Paradise thrown on the shores of idolatrous Greece, to this divine philosopher, Chen quella schiera ando piu presso al segno Al qual aggiunge, a eld dal cielo e dato. Petrarch. Trionfo della Fama, cap. iii. 5, 6. vr. REFLECTIONS INTRODUCTORY TO MORAL AXD RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. OX SENSIBILITY. If Prudence, though practically inseparable from morality, is not to be confounded with the moral principle : still less may Sensibility, that is. a con- stitutional quickness of sympathy with pain and pleasure, and a keen sense of the gratifications that accompany social intercourse, mutual endearments, and reciprocal preferences, be mistaken, or deemed a substitute, for either. Sensibility is not even a sure pledge of a good heart, though among the most common meanings of that many-meaning and too commonly misapplied expression. So far from beiug either morality, or one with the moral principle, it ought not even to be placed in the same rank with prudence. For prudence is at least an offspring of the understanding ; but sensibility (the sensibility, I mean, here spoken of ), is for the greater part a quality of the nerves, and a result of individual bodily temperament. Prudence is an active principle, and implies a sa- crifice of self, though only to the same self projected. as it were, to a distance. But the very term sensi- bility marks its passive nature ; and in its mere self, apart from choice and reflection, it proves little more 20 AIDS TO REFLECTION than the coincidence or contagion of pleasurable or painful sensations in different persons. Alas ! how many are there in this over-stimulated age, — in which the occurrence of excessive and un- healttry sensitiveness is so frequent, as even to have reversed the current meaning of the word, nervous, — how many are there whose sensibility prompts them to remove those evils alone, which by hideous spec- tacle or clamorous outcry are present to their senses and disturb their selfish enjoyments ! Provided the dunghill is not before their parlour-window, they are well contented to know that it exists, and perhaps as the hotbed on which their own luxuries are reared. Sensibility is not necessarily benevolence. Nay, by rendering us tremblingly alive to trifling misfortunes, it frequently prevents it, and induces an effeminate selfishness instead, pampering the coward heart With feelings all too delicate for use. Sweet are the tears, that from a Howard's eye Drop on the cheek of one, he lifts from earth : And he, who works me good with unmoved face, Does it but half : he chills me, while he aids, My benefactor, not my brother man. But even this, this cold benevolence, Seems worth, seems manhood, when there rise before me The sluggard pity's vision-weaving tribe, Who sigh for wretchedness yet shun the wretched, Nursing in some delicious solitude Their slothful loves and dainty sympathies.* Where virtue is, sensibility is the ornament and becoming attire of virtue. On certain occasions it may almost be said to become f virtue. But sensibility * Poems, 1797, p. 103; Poems, 1852, p. 233; with a slight difference of expression in each case. — Ed. f There sometimes occurs an apparent play on words, SENSIBILITY. HI and all the amiable qualities may likewise become, and too often have become, the pandars of vice, and the instruments of seduction. So must it needs be with all qualities that have their rise only in parts and fragments of our nature. A man of warm passions may sacrifice half his estate to rescue a friend from prison : for he is naturally sympathetic, and the more social part of his nature happened to be uppermost. The same man shall afterwards exhibit the same disregard of money in an attempt to seduce that friend's wife or daughter. All the evil achieved by Hobbes and the whole school of materialists will appear inconsiderable if it be compared with the mischief effected and occasioned by the sentimental philosophy of Sterne, and his numerous imitators. The vilest appetites and the most remorseless inconstancy towards their objects, acquired the titles of the heart, the irresistible feelings, the too tender sensibility : and if the frosts of prudence, the icy chains of human law thawed and vanished at the genial warmth of human nature, who could help it ? It was an amiable weakness ! About this time, too, the profanation of the word, Love, rose to its height. The French naturalists, BufTon and others, borrowed it from the sentimental novelists : the Swedish and English philosophers took the contagion ; and the Muse of science conde- scended to seek admission into the saloons of fashion which not only to the inoraliser, but even to the philoso- phical etymologist, appears more than a mere play. Thus in the double sense of the word, become. I have known persons so anxious to have their dress become them, as to convert it at length into their proper self, and thus actually to become the dress. Such a one (safeliest spoken of by the neutei pro- noun), I consider as but a suit of live finery. It is indifferent whether we. say — it becomes he ; or, he becomes it. 128 AIDS TO REFLECTR)N and frivolity, rouged like a harlot, and with the har lot's wanton leer. I know not how the annals of guilt could be better forced into the service of virtue, than by such a comment on the present paragraph, as would be afforded by a selection from the sentimental correspondence produced in courts of justice within the last thirty years, fairly translated into the true meaning of the words, and the actual object and purpose of the infamous writers. Do you in good earnest aim at dignity of character ? By all the treasures of a peaceful mind, by all the charms of an open countenance, I conjure you, youth, turn away from those who live in the twilight between vice and virtue. Are not reason, discrimi- nation, law, and deliberate choice, the distinguishing characters of humanity ? Can aught, then, worthy of a human being proceed from a habit of soul, which would exclude all these and (to borrow a metaphor from paganism) prefer the den of Trophonius to the temple and oracles of the God of light ? Can anything manly, I say, proceed from those, who for law and light would substitute shapeless feelings, sentiments, impulses, which as far as they differ from the vital workings in the brute animals owe the difference to their former connexion with the proper virtues of humanity ; as dendrites derive the outlines, that constitute their value above other clay-stones, from the casual neighbourhood and pressure of the plants, the names of which they assume. Remember, that love itself in its highest earthly bearing, as the ground of the marriage union,* becomes love by an inward * It might be a mean of preventing many unhappy mar- riages, if the youth of both sexes had it early impressed on their minds, that marriage contracted between Christians is a true and perfect symbol or mystery ; that is, the actualising faith being supposed to exist in the receivers, it is an outward SENSIBILITY. 29 fiat of the will, by a completing and sealing act of moral election, and lays claim to permanence only under the form of duty.* sign co-essential with, that which it signifies, or a living part of that, the whole of which it represents. Marriage there- fore, in the Christian sense (Ephesians v. 22 — 23), as symbo- lical of the union of the soul with Christ the Mediator, and with God through Christ, is perfectly a sacramental ordi- nance, and not retained at the Reformation as one of the sacraments, for two reasons ; first, that the sign is not dis- tinctive of the Church of Christ, and the ordinance not peculiar, nor owing its origin to the Gospel dispensation ; secondly, that it is not of universal obligation, nor a means of grace enjoined on all Christians. In other and plainer words, marriage does not contain in itself an open profession of Christ, and it is not a sacrament of the Church, but only of certain individual members of the Church. It is evident, however, that neither of these reasons affects or diminishes the religious nature and dedicative force of the marriage vow, or detracts from the solemnity in the Apostolic declaration : This is a great mystery. The interest, which the State has in the appropriation of one woman to one man, and the civil obligations therefrom resulting, form an altogether distinct consideration. When I meditate on the words of the Apostle, confirmed and illus- trated as they are, by so many harmonies in the spiritual structure of our proper humanity, — (in the image of God, male and female created he the man^ — and then reflect how little claim so large a number of legal cohabitations have to the name of Christian marriages — I feel inclined to doubt, whether the plan of celebrating marriages universally by the civil magistrate, in the first instance, and leaving the religious covenant and sacramental pledge to the election of the parties themselves, adopted during the Commonwealth in England, and in our own times by the French legislature, was not in fact, whatever it might be in intention, reverential to Christianity. At all events, it was their own act and choice, if the parties made bad worse by the profanation of a Gospel mystery. * See the beautiful passages. Poems, pp. 847 — 348. — Ed, Jo PRUDENTIAL APHOEISMS. APHORISM I. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE* With respect to any final aim or end, the greater part of mankind live at hazard. They have no certain harbour in view, nor direct their course by any fixed star. But to him that knoweth not the port to which he is bound, no wind can be favourable ; neither can he, who has not yet determined at what mark he is to shoot, direct his arrow aright. It is not, however, the less true that there is a proper object to aim at ; and if this object be meant by the term happiness, (though I think that not the most appropriate term for a state, the perfection of which consists in the exclusion of all hap, that is, chance), I assert that there is such a thing as human happiness, a summum bonam, or ultimate good. What this is, the Bible alone shows clearly and certainly; and points out the way that leads to the attainment of it. This is that which prevailed with St. Augustine to study the Scriptures, and engaged his affection to them. " In Cicero, and Plato, and other such waiters," says he, " I meet with many things acutely said, and things tkat excite a certain warmth of emotion, but in none of them do I find these words, Come unto vie, all ye that labour, and are heavy laden, and I iv ill give you rest." * * Apad Ciceronem et Platonem, aliosque ejicsmodi scriptores, PRUDENTIAL APHORISMS. Felicity, in its proper sense, is but another word for fortunateness. or happiness ; and I can see no advantage in the improper use of words, when proper terms are to be found, but, on the contrary, much mischief. For, by familiarising the mind to equi- vocal expressions, that is, such as may be taken in two or more different meanings, we introduce con- fusion of thought, and furnish the sophist with his best and handiest tools. For the juggle of sophistry consists, for the greater part, in using a word in one sense in the premiss, and in another sense in the conclusion. We should accustom ourselves to think, and reason in precise and stedfast terms, even when custom, or the deficiency, or the corruption of the language will not permit the same strictness in speaking. The mathematician finds this so necessary to the truths which he is seeking, that his science begins with, and is founded on, the definition of his terms. The botanist, the chemist, the anatomist, feel and submit to this necessity at all costs, even at the risk of exposing their several pursuits to the ridicule of the many, by technical terms, hard to be remembered, and alike quarrelsome to the ear and the tongue. In the business of moral and religious reflection, in the acquisition of clear and distinct conceptions of our duties, and of the relations in which we stand to God, our neighbour, and ourselves, no such difficulties occur. At the utmost we have only to rescue words, already existing and familiar, from the false or vague meanings imposed on them by carelessness, or by the clipping and debasing multa sunt acute dicta, et leniter calentia, sed in Us omnibus hoc non invenio, Venite ad me, &c. [Matt. xii. 28.] (See Confess. vii. xxi. 27. — Ed.) 32 AIDS TO REFLECTION. misusage of the market. And surely happiness, duty, faith, truth, and final hlessedness, are matters of deeper and dearer interest for all men, than circles to the geometrician, or the characters of plants to the botanist, or the affinities and combining principle of the elements of bodies to the chemist, or even than the mechanism (fearful and wonderful though it be !) of the perishable tabernacle of the soul can be to the anatomist. Among the aids to reflection, place the following maxim prominent : let distinctness in ex- pression advance side by side with distinction in thought. For one useless subtlety in our elder divines and moralists, I will produce ten sophisms of equi- vocation in the writings of our modern preceptors : and for one error resulting from excess in distinguish- ing the indifferent, I could show ten mischievous delusions from the habit of confounding the diverse. Whether you are reflecting for yourself, or reason- ing with another, make it a rule to ask yourself the precise meaning of the word, on which the point in question appears to turn ; and if it may be (that is, by writers of authority has been) used in several senses, then ask which of these the word is at present intended to convey. By this mean, and scarcely without it, you will at length acquire a facility in detecting the quid pro quo. And believe me, in so doing you will enable yourself to disarm and expose four-fifths of the main arguments of our most re- nowned irreligious philosophers, ancient and modern. For the quid pro quo is at once the rock and quarry, on and with which the strongholds of disbelief, ma- terialism, and (more pernicious still) Epicurean morality, are built. PRUDENTIAL APHORISMS. 33 APHORISM II. If we seriously consider what religion is, we shall find the saying of the wise king Solomon to be unex- ceptionably true : Her ways are ways of pleasantness, and all her paths are peace* Doth religion require anything of us more than that we live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world ? Now what, I pray, can be more pleasant or peaceable than these? Temperance i3 always at leisure, luxury always in a hurry : the latter weakens the body and pollutes the soul ; the former is the sanctity, purity, and sound state of both. It is one of Epicurus's fixed maxims, " That life can never be pleasant without virtue." COMMENT. In the works of moralists, both Christian and Pagan, it is often asserted — (indeed there are few commonplaces of more frequent recurrence) — that the happiness even of this life consists solely, or princi- pally, in virtue ; that virtue is the only happiness of this life ; that virtue is the truest pleasure, and the like. I doubt not that the meaning, which the writers intended to convey by these and the like expressions, was true and wise. But I deem it safer to say, that in all the outward relations of this life, in all our outward conduct and actions, both in what we should do, and in what we should abstain from, the dictates of virtue are the very same with those of self-interest; tending to, though they do not proceed from, the same point. For the outward object of virtue being the greatest producible sum of happiness of all men, it must needs include the object of an intelligent * Prov. iii. 19.— Ed. 34 AIDS TO REFLECTION. self-love, which is the greatest possible happiness of one individual ; for what is true of all must be true of each. Hence, you cannot become better, that is, more virtuous, but you will become happier : and you cannot become worse, that is, more vicious, without an increase of misery, or at the best a proportional less of enjoyment as the consequence. If the thing were not inconsistent with our well-being, and known to be so, it would not have been classed as a vice. Thus what in an enfeebled and disordered mind is called prudence, is the voice of nature in a healthful state : as is proved by the known fact, that the prudential duties, that is, those actions which are commanded by virtue because they are prescribed by prudence, brute animals fulfil by natural instinct. The pleasure that accompanies or depends on a healthy and vigorous body will be the consequence and reward of a temperate life and habits of active industry, whether this pleasure were or were not the chief or only determining motive thereto. Virtue may, possibly, add to the pleasure a good of another kind, a higher good, perhaps, than the worldly mind is capable of understanding, a spiritual complacency, of which in your present sensualisecl state you can form no idea. It may add, I say, but it cannot detract from it. Thus the reflected rays of the sun that give light, distinction, and endless multiformity to the mind, give at the same time the pleasurable sensation of warmth to the body. If then the time has not yet come for any thing higher, act on the maxim of seeking the most plea- sure with the least pain : and, if only you do not seek where you yourself know it will not be found, this very pleasure and this freedom from the dis- quietude of pain may produce in you a state of being directlv and indirectly favourable to the germination PRUDENTIAL APHORISMS. 35 and up spring of a nobler seed. If it be true, that men are miserable because they are wicked, it is like- wise true, that many are wicked because they are mi- serable. Health, cheerfulness, and easy circumstances, the ordinary consequences of temperance and industry, will at least leave the field clear and open, will tend to preserve the scales of the judgment even : while the consciousness of possessing the esteem, rospect, and sympathy of your neighbours, and the sense of your own increasing power and influence, can scarcely fail to give a tone of dignity to your mind, and in cline you to hope nobly of your own being. And thus they may prepare and predispose you to the sense and acknowledgment of a principle differing, not merely in degree but in kind, from the faculties and instincts of the higher and more intelligent spe- cies of animals, (the ant, the beaver, the elephant,) and which principle is therefore your proper huma- nity. And on this account and with this view alone may certain modes of pleasurable or agreeable sen- sation, without confusion of terms, be honoured with the title of refined, intellectual, ennobling pleasures. For pleasure — (and happiness in its proper sense is but the continuity and sum total of the pleasure which is allotted or happens to a man, and hence by the Greeks called tvrvyjia, that is, good hap, or more religiously, evbatfJLovia, that is, favourable providence) — pleasure, I say, consists in the harmony between the specific excitability of a living creature, and the exciting causes correspondent thereto. Considered therefore exclusively in and for itself, the only ques- tion is quantum, not quale / How much on the whole ? the contrary, that is, the painful and disa- greeable, having been subtracted. The quality is a matter of taste : et de gustibus non est disputandur& 83*0 man can judge for another. 32 36 A1D3 TO EEFLECTION. This, I repeat, appears to me a safer language than the sentences quoted above — (that virtue alone is happiness ; that happiness consists in virtue, and the like) — sayings which I find it hard to reconcile with other positions of still more frequent occurrence in the same divines, or with the declaration of St. Paul : If in this life only we have hope, ive are of all men most miserable.* At all events, I should rely far more confidently on the converse, namely, that to he vicious is to be miserable. Few men are so utterly reprobate, so imbruted by their vices, as not to have some lucid, or at least quiet and sober, intervals ; and in such a moment, dum desaviunt \rm y few can stand up un- shaken against the appeal to their own experience — What have been the wages of sin ? What has the devil done for you ? What sort of master have you found him ? Then let us in befitting detail, and by a series of questions that ask so loud, and are secure against any false answer, urge home the proof of the position, that to be vicious is to be wretched; adding the fearful corollary, that if even in the body, which as long as life is in it can never he wholly be- reaved of pleasurable sensations, vice is found to be misery, what must it not be in the world to come ? There, where even the crime is no longer possible, much less the gratifications that once attended it; — where nothing of vice remains but its guilt and its misery — vice must be misery itself, all and utter misery. — So best, if I err not, may the motives of pru- dence be held forth, and the impulses of self-love be awakened, in alliance with truth, and free from the danger of confounding things (the laws of duty, I mean, and the maxims of interest) which it deeplj * 1 Cm xv. 1§.—Ed. PHUDENTIAL APHOIUSMS. 37 concerns us to keep distinct ; inasmuch as tl lis dis- tinction and the faith therein are essential to our moral nature, and this again the ground-work and pre-condition of the spiritual state, in which the humanity strives after godliness, and in the name and power, and through the prevenient and assisting grace, of the Mediator, will not strive in vain. The advantages of a life passed in conformity with the precepts of virtue and religion, and in how many and various respects they recommend virtue and religion even on grounds of prudence, form a delight- ful subject of meditation, and a source of refreshing thought to good and pious men. Nor is it strange if, transported with the view, such persons should sometimes discourse on the charm of forms and colours to men whose eyes are not yet couched ; or that they occasionally seem to invert the relations of cause and effect, and forget that there are acts and determinations of the will and affections, the conse- quences of which may be plainly foreseen, and yet cannot be made our proper and primary motives for such acts and determinations, without destroying or entirely altering the distinct nature and character of the latter. S-ophron is well informed that wealth and extensive patronage will be the consequence of his obtaining the love and esteem of Constantia. But if the foreknowledge of this consequeuce were, and were found out to be, Sophron's main and determining motive for seeking this love and esteem ; and if Constantia were a woman that merited, or was capa- ble of feeling, either the one or the other ; would not Sophron find (and deservedly too) aversion and con- tempt in their stead ? Wherein, if not in this, differs the friendship of worldlings from true friendship ? Without kind offices and useful services, wherever the power and opportunity occur, love would be a 38 AJDS TO REFLECTION. hollow pretence. Yet what noble mind would not be offended, if he were thought to value the love for the sake of the services, and not rather the services for the sake of the love ? APHORISM III. Though prudence in itself is neither virtue nor spiritual holiness, yet without prudence, or in oppo- sition to it, neither virtue nor holiness can exist. APHORISM IV. Art thou under the tyranny of sin — a slave to vicious habits — at enmity with God, and a skulking fugitive from thine own conscience? O, how idle the dispute, whether the listening to the dictates of prudence from prudential and self-interested motives be virtue or merit, when the not listening is guilt, misery, madness, and despair ! The best, the most Christian-like, pity thou canst show, is to take pity on thy own soul. The best and most acceptable service thou canst render, is to do justice and show mercy to thyself. 39 MOEAL AND EELIGIOUS APHORISMS. APHORISM I. LEIGHTON. What the Apostles were in an extraordinary way, befitting the first annunciation of a religion for all man- kind, this all teachers of moral truth, who aim to prepare for its reception by calling the attention of men to the law in their own hearts, may, without presumption, consider themselves to be under ordinary gifts and circumstances : namely, ambassadors for the greatest of kings, and upon no mean employment, the great treaty of peace and reconcilement betwixt him and mankind. APHORISM II. OF THE FEELINGS NATURAL TO INGENUOUS MINDS TOWARDS THOSE WHO HATE FIRST LED THEM TO REFLECT. LEIGHTON. Though divine truths are to be received equally from every minister alike, yet it must be acknowledged that there is something (we know not what to call it) of a more acceptable reception of those which at first were the means of bringing men to God, than of others ; like the opinion some have of physicians, whom they love. APHORISM III. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. The worth and value of knowledge is in proportion to the worth and value of its object. What, then, is the best knowledge ? The exactest knowledge of things is, to know them 40 AIDS TO REFLECTION. in their causes ; it is then an excellent thing, and worthy of their endeavours who are most desirous of knowledge, to know the best things in their highest causes ; and the happiest way of attaining to this knowledge is, to possess those things, and to know them in experience. APHORISM IV. LEIQHTON. It is one main point of happiness, that he that is happy doth know and judge himself to be so. This being the peculiar good of a reasonable creature, it is to be enjoyed in a reasonable way. It is not as the dull resting of a stone, or any other natural body in its natural place ; but the knowledge and considera- tion of it is the fruition of it, the very relishing and tasting of its sweetness. REMARK. As in a Christian land we receive the lessons of morality in connexion with the doctrines of revealed religion, we cannot too early free the mind from pre- judices widely spread, in part through the abuse, but far more from ignorance, of the true meaning of doc- trinal terms, which, however they may have been perverted to the purposes of fanaticism, are not only Scriptural, but of too frequent occurrence in Scripture to be overlooked or passed by in silence. The fol- lowing extract, therefore, deserves attention, as clear- ing the doctrine of salvation, in connexion with the divine foreknowledge, from all objections on the score of morality, by the just and impressive view which the Archbishop here gives of those occasional revolutionary moments, that turn of the tide in the mind and character of certain individuals, which MOEAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS, 41 (taking a religious course, and referred immediately to the Author of all good) were in his day, more generally than at present, entitled Effectual Calling. The theological interpretation and the philosophic validity of this Apostolic triad, election, salvation, and effectual calling, (the latter being the interme- diate,) will he found among the comments on the Aphorisms of spiritual import. For my present pur- pose it will he sufficient if only I prove that the doctrines are in themselves innocuous, and may be both holden and taught without any practical ill consequences, and without detriment to the moral frame. APHORISM V. LEIGIITON. Two links of the chain (namely, Election and Sal- vation) are up in heaven in God's own hand ; but this middle one (that is, Effectual Calling) is let down to earth, into the hearts of his children, and they lay- ing hold on it have sure hold on the other two : for no power can sever them. If, therefore, they can read the characters of God's image in their own souls, those are the counterpart of the golden characters of his love, in which their names are written in the book of life. Their believing writes their names under the promises of the revealed book of life (the Scriptures) and thus ascertains them, that the same names are in the secret book of life which God hath by himself from eternity. So that finding the stream of grace in their hearts, though they see not the fountain whence it flows, nor the ocean into which it returns, yet they know that it hath its source in their eternal election, and shall empty itself into the ocean of their eternal salvation. If Election, Effectual Calling, and Salvation, bo 42 AIDS TO REFLECTION. inseparably linked together, then, by any one of them a man may lay hold upon all the rest, and may know that his hold is sure ; and this is the way wherein we may attain, and ought to seek, the comfortable as- surance of the love of God. Therefore, make your calling sure, and by that your election ; for that be- ing done, this follows of itself. We are not to pry immediately into the decree, but to read it in the per- formance. Though the mariner sees not the pole-star, yet the needle of the compass winch points to it, tells him which way he sails : thus the heart that is touched with the loadstone of divine love, trembling with godly fear, and yet still looking towards God by fixed be lieving, interprets the fear by the love in the fear, and tells the soul that its course is heavenward, towards the haven of eternal rest. He that loves, may be sure he was loved first ; and he that chooses God for his delight and portion, may conclude confidently, that God hath chosen him to be one of those that shall enjoy him, and be happy in him for ever : for that our love and electing of him is but the return and repercussion of the beams of his love shining upon us. Although from present unsanctification, a man can- not infer that he is not elected ; for the decree may, for part of a man's life, run (as it were) underground ; yet this is sure, that that estate leads to death, and unless it be broken, will prove the black line of repro- bation. A man hath no portion amongst the children of God, nor can read one word of comfort in all the promises that belong to them, while he remains un- holy. In addition to the preceding, I select the following paragraphs, as having no where seen the terms, Spirit, MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 43 the Gifts of the Spirit, and the like, so effectually vin- dicated from the sneers of the sciolist on the one hand, and protected from the perversions of the fanatic on the other. In these paragraphs the Archbishop at once shatters and precipitates the only drawbridge between the fanatical and the orthodox doctrine of grace, and the gifts of the Spirit. In Scripture the term Spirit, as a power or property seated in the human soul, never stands singly, but is always speci- fied by a genitive case following ; this being a He- braism instead of the adjective which the writer would have used if he had thought, as well as written, in Greek. It is the spirit of meekness (a meek spirit), or the spirit of chastity, and the like. The moral result, the specific form and character in which the Spirit manifests its presence, is the only sure pledge and token of its presence ; which is to be, and which safely may be, inferred from its practical effects, but of which an immediate knowledge or consciousness is impossible ; and every pretence to such knowledge is either hypocrisy or fanatical delusion. APHORISM VI. LEIGHTOX. If any pretend that they have the Spirit, and so turn away from the straight rule of the Holy Scrip- tures, they have a spirit indeed, but it is a fanatical spirit, the spirit of delusion and giddiness : but the Spirit of God, that leads his children in the way of truth, and is for that purpose sent them from heaven to guide them thither, squares their thoughts and ways to that rule whereof it is author, and that word which was inspired by it, and sanctifies them to obedience. He that saith, I hioiv him, and Jceepeih not his com- mandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him. 'J John ii. 4.) 44 AIDS TO REFLECTION Now this Spirit which saiictifieth, and sanctifieth to obedience, is within us the evidence of our election, and the earnest of our salvation. And whoso are not sanctified and led by this Spirit, the Apostle tells us what is their condition : // any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his.* The stones which are appointed for that glorious temple above, are hewn, and polished, and prepared for it here ; as the stones were wrought and prepared in the moun- tains, for building the temple at Jerusalem. COMMENT. There are many serious and sincere Christians who have not attained to a fulness of knowledge and in- sight, but are w r ell and judiciously employed in pre- paring for it. Even these may study the master- works of our elder divines with safety and advantage, if they will accustom themselves to translate the theological terms into their moral equivalents ; saying to them- selves — This may not be all that is meant, but this is meant, and it is that portion of the meaning, which belongs to me in the present stage of my progress. For example : render the words, sanctification of the Spirit, or the sanctifying influences of the Spirit by purity in life and action from a pure principle. He needs only reflect on his own experience to be convinced, that the man makes the motive, and not the motive the man. What is a strong motive to one man, is no motive at all to another. If, then, the man determines the motive, what determines the man — to a good and worthy act, we will say, or a virtuous course of conduct ? The intelligent will, or the self-determining power ? True, in part it is ; and therefore the will is, pre eminently, the spiritual Mom. viii. 9. — Ed. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 45 constituent in our being. But will any reflecting man admit, that bis own will is the only and sufficient de- terminant of all he is, and all he does ? Is nothing to be attributed to the harmony of the system to which he belongs, and to the pre-established fitness of the objects and agents, known and unknown, that sur- round him, as acting on the will, though, doubtless, with it likewise ? — a process, which the co-instanta- neous yet reciprocal action of the air and the vital energy of the lungs in breathing, may help to render intelligible. Again : in the world we see everywhere evidences of a unity, which the component parts are so far from explaining, that they necessarily pre-suppose it as the cause and condition of their existing as those parts ; or even of their existing at all. This antecedent unity, or cause and principle of each union, it has since the time of Bacon and Kepler been customary to call a law r . This crocus, for instance, or any other flower, the reader may have in sight, or choose to bring before his fancy. That the root, stem, leaves, petals, &c. cohere to one plant, is owing to an ante- cedent power or principle in the seed, which existed before a single particle of the matters that constitute the size and visibility of the crocus, had been attracted from the surrounding soil, air, and moisture. Shall we turn to the seed ? Here too the same necessity meets us. An antecedent unity — (I speak not of the parent plant, but of an agency antecedent in the order of operance, yet remaining present as the con- servative and reproductive power) — must here too be supposed. Analyse the seed with the finest tools, and let the solar microscope come in aid of your senses, — what do you find ? Means and instruments, a wonderous fairy tale of nature, magazines of food, s tores of various sorts, pipes, spiracles, defences — a 46 AIDS TO REFLECTION. house of many chambers, and the owner and inhabi- tant invisible ! Reflect further on the countless mil- lions of seeds of the same name, each more than numerically differenced from exeyy other : and farther yet, reflect on the requisite harmony of ail surround- ing things, each of which necessitates the same pro- cess of thought, and the coherence of all of which to a system, a world, demands its own adequate ante- cedent unity, which must therefore of necessity be present to all and in all, yet in no wise excluding or suspending the individual law or principle of union in each. Xow, will reason, will common sense, en- dure the assumption, that it is highly reasonable to believe a universal power, as the cause and pre-con- dition of the harmony of all particular wholes, each of which involves the working principle of its own union — that it is reasonable, I say, to believe this respecting the aggregate of objects, which, without a subject, (that is, a sentient and intelligent existence) would be purposeless ; and yet unreasonable and even superstitious or enthusiastic to entertain a similar belief in relation to the system of intelligent and self- conscious beings, to the moral and personal work] ? But if in this too, in the great community of persons, it is rational to infer a one universal presence, a one present to all and in all, is it not most irrational to suppose that a finite will can exclude it ? Whenever, therefore, the man is determined (that is, impelled and directed) to act in harmony of inter- communion, must not something be attributed to this all-present power as acting in the will ? And by what fitter names can we call this than the law, as em- powering; the word, as informing ; and the spirit, as actuating ? What has been here said amounts, I am aware, only to a negative conception ; but this is all that is MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 47 required for a mind at that period of its growth which we are now supposing, and as long as religion is con- templated under the form of morality. A positive in- sight belongs to a more advanced stage : for spiritual truths can only spiritually be discerned. This we know from revelation, and (the existeuce of spiritual truths being granted) philosophy is compelled to draw the same conclusion. But though merely negative, it is sufficient to render the union of religion and mo- rality conceivable; sufficient to satisfy an unprejudiced inquirer, that the spiritual doctrines of the Christian religion are not at war with the reasoning faculty, and that if they do not run on the same line, or radius. with the understanding, yet neither do they cut or cross it. It is sufficient, in short, to prove, that some distinct and consistent meaning may be attached to the assertion of the learned and philosophic Apostle, that the Spirit bearetk witness with our spirit,* that is. with the will, as the supernatural in man and the principle of our personality — of that I mean, by which we are responsible agents ; persons, and not merely living things.f It will suffice to satisfy a reflecting mind, that even at the porch and threshold of revealed truth there is a great and worthy' sense in which we may believe * Rom. viii. 16. — Ed. f Whatever is comprised in the chain and mechanism of cause and effect, of course necessitated, and having its neces- sity in some other thing, antecedent or concurrent — this is said to be natural : and the aggregate and system of all such things is Nature. It is, therefore, a contradiction in terms to include in this the free-will, of which the verbal definition is — that which originates an act or state of being. In this sense, therefore, vrhich is the sense of St. Paul, and indeed of the New Testament throughout, spiritual and supernatural are smonvmous. 48 AIDS TO REFLECTION. the Apostle s assurance, that not only doth the Spirit help our infirmities ;* that is, act on the will by a pre- disposing influence from without, as it were, though in a spiritual manner, and without suspending or destroying its freedom — (the possibility of which is proved to us in the influences of education, providen tial occurrences, and, above all, of example) — but that in regenerate souls it may act in the will ; that unit ing and becoming one \ with our will or spirit it may make intercession for us :! nay, in this intimate union taking upon itself the form of our infirmities, may intercede for us with groanings that cannot he utterecl.% Nor is there any danger of fanaticism or enthusiasm as the consequence of such a belief, if only the attention be carefully and earnestly drawn to the concluding words of the sentence ; if only the due force and the full import be given to the term unutterable or incommunicable, — aXaXrjTois — in St. Paul's use of it. In this the strictest and most proper use of the term, it signifies, that the subject, of which it is predicated, is something which I cannot, which from the nature of the thing it is impossible that I should, communicate to any human mind (even of a person under the same conditions with myself) so as to make it in itself the object of his direct and immediate consciousness. It cannot be the object of my own direct and immediate consciousness ; but must * Bom. viii. 26.— Ed. + Some distant and faint similitude of this, that merely au tt similitude may be innocently used to quiet the fancy, pro vided it be not imposed on the understanding as an analogous fact, or as identical in kind, is presented to us in the power of the magnet to awaken and strengthen the magnetic power in a bar of iron, and (in the instance of the compound magnet) of its acting in and with the latter. J Rom. viii. 26.— Ed. § Ibid. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHOBISMS. 49 be inferred. Inferred it may be from its workings ; it cannot be perceived in them. And thanks to God ! in all points in which the knowledge is of high and necessary concern to our moral and relig:'ous welfare, from the effects it may safely be inferred by us, from the workings it may be assuredly known ; and the Scriptures furnish the clear and unfailing rules for directing the inquiry, and for drawing the conclusion. If any reflecting mind be surprised that the aids of the Divine Spirit should be deeper than our conscious ness <"au reach, it must arise from the not having at- tended sufficiently to the nature and necessary limits of human consciousness. For the same impossibility exists as to the first acts and movements of our own will; — the farthest distance our recollection can follow back the traces never leads us to the first foot-mark ; the lowest depth that the light of our consciousness cau visit even with a doubtful glimmering, is still at an unknown distance from the ground : and so, indeed, must it be with all truths, and all modes of being, that can neither be counted, coloured, nor delineated. Be- fore and after, when applied to such subjects, are but allegories, which the sense or imagination supplies to the understanding. The position of the Anstote- leans, nihil in intellectu quod non prim in sensu, on which Locke's Essay is grounded, is irrefragable : Locke erred only in taking half the truth for a whole truth. Conception is consequent on perception. What we cannot imagine, we cannot, in the proper sense of the word, conceive. I have already given one definition of Nature. Another, and differing from the former in words only, is this : Whatever is representable in the forms of time and space, is Nature. But whatever is compre- hended in time and space, is included inthe mechanism of cause and effect And conversely, whatever, by B 50 AIDS TO REFLECTION, whatever means, has its principle in itself, so far aa to originate its actions, cannot be contemplated in any of the forms of space and time ; it must, therefore, be considered as spirit or spiritual by a mind in that stage of its development which Is here supposed, and which we have agreed to understand under the name of morality or the moral state : for in this stage we are concerned only with the forming of negative concep- tions, negative convictions ; and by spiritual I do not pretend to determine what the will is, but what it is not — namely that it is not nature. And as no man who admits a will at all, (for we may safely presume that no man, not meaning to speak figuratively, would call the shifting current of a stream the will* of the river), can suppose it below nature, we may safely add, that it is supernatural ; and this without the least pretence to any positive notion or insight. Now Morality accompanied with convictions like these, I have ventured to call Religious Morality. Of the importance I attach to the state of mind implied in these convictions, for its own sake, and as the na- tural preparation for a yet higher state and a more substantive knowledge, proof more than sufficient, perhaps, has been given in the length and minuteness of this introductory discussion, and in the foreseen risk which I run of exposing the Volume at large tc the censure which every work, or rather which every writer, must be prepared to undergo, who, treating of subjects that cannot be seen, touched, or in any other way made matters of outward sense, is yet anxious to * " The river glideth at his own sweet will." IVordsivorth's exquisite Sonnet on Westminster-bridge at sunrise. But who does not see that here the poetic charm arises from the known and felt impropriety of the expression, in *he technical sense of the word, impropriety, among gram- marians ? MOIiAT, AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 51 convey a distinct meaning by the words he makes use of — the censure of being dry, abstract, and — (of all qualities most scaring and opprobrious to the ears of the present generation) — metaphysical : though how it is possible that a work not physical, that is, em- ployed on objects known or believed on the evidence of senses, should be other than metaphysical, that is, treating on subjects, the evidence of which is not derived from the senses, is a problem which critics of this order find it convenient to leave unsolved. I shall, indeed, have reason to think myself fortunate,, if this be all the charge. How many smart quotations, which (duly cemented by personal allusions to the author's supposed pursuits, attachments, and infir- mities), would of themselves make up a review of this Volume, might be supplied from the works of Butler, Swift, and Warburton ! For instance: " It may not be amiss to inform the public, that the compiler of the Aids to Reflection, and commenter on a Scotch Bishop's Platonico-Calvinistic commentary on St. Peter, be- longs to the sect of the iEolists, whose fruitful imagi- nations led them into certain notions, which although in appearance very unaccountable, are not without their mysteries and their meanings : furnishing plenty of matter for such, whose converting imaginations dis- pose them to reduce all things into types ; who can make shadows, no thanks to the sun ; and then mould them into substances, no thanks to philosophy ; whose peculiar talent lies in fixing tropes and allegories to the letter, and refining what is literal into figure and mystery. And would it were my lot to meet with a critic, who, in the might of his own convictions, and with arms of equal point and efficiency from his own forge, would come forth as my assailant ; or who, as a friend to my purpose, would set forth the objections to the e2 52 At^S TO REFLECTION. matter and pervading spirit of these Aphorisms, and the accompanying elucidations. Were it my task to form the mind of a young man of talent, desirous to establish his belief on solid principles, and in the light of distinct understanding, I would commence his theological studies, or, at least, that most important part of them respecting the aid which religion pro- mises in our attempts to realise the ideas of morality, by bringing together all the passages scattered throughout the writings of Swift and Butler, that bear on enthusiasm, spiritual operations, and pretences to the gifts of the Spirit, with the whole train of new lights, raptures, experiences, and the like. For all that the richest wit, in intimate union with profound sense and steady observation, can supply on these topics, is to be found in the works of these satirists ; though unhappily alloyed with much that can only tend to pollute the imagination. Without stopping to estimate the degree of carica- ture in the portraits sketched by these bold masters, and without attempting to determine in how many of the enthusiasts brought forward by them in proof of the influence of false doctrines, a constitutional in- sanity, that would probably have shown itself in some other form, would be the truer solution, I would direct my pupil's attention to one feature common to the whole group — the pretence, namely, of possessing, or a belief and expectation grounded on other men's as- surances of their possessing, an immediate conscious- ness, a sensible experience, of the Spirit in and during its operation on the soul. It is not enough that you grant them a consciousness of the gifts and graces in- fused, or an assurance of the spiritual origin of the same, grounded on their correspondence to the Scrip- ture promises, and their conformity with the idea of the divine Giver. No • they all alike, it will MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 53 be found, lay claim, or at least look forward, to an inward perception of the Spirit itself and of its operating. Whatever must be misrepresented in order to be ridiculed, is in fact not ridiculed ; but the thing sub- stituted for it. It is a satire on something else, coupled with a lie on the part of the satirist, who knowing, or having the means of knowing the truth, chose to call one thing by the name of another. The pretensions to the supernatural, pilloried by Butler, sent to Bedlam by Swift, and (on their re-appearance in public) gib- betted by Warburton, and anatomised by Bishop Lavington,* one and all, have this for their essential character, that the Spirit is made the immediate object of sense or sensation. Whether the spiritual presence and agency are supposed cognisable by indescribable feeling or unimaginable vision by some specific visual energy ; whether seen or heard, or touched, smelt, and tasted — for in those vast store-houses of fana- tical assertion, — the volumes of ecclesiastical history and religious auto-biography, — instances are not wanting even of the three latter extravagancies; — this variety in the mode may render the several pretensions more or less offensive to the taste ; but with the same absurdity for the reason, this being de- rived from a contradiction in terms common and radi- cal to them all alike, — the assumption of a something essentially supersensual, which is nevertheless the object of sense, that is not supersensual. Well then ! — for let me be allowed still to suppose the Reader present to me, and that I am addressing 1 im in the character of companion and guide — the rositions recommended for your examination not only * " A Comparison between the enthusiasm of Methodists and of rapists."— J5VZ. 54 AIDS TO REFLECTION. do not involve, but exclude, this inconsistency. And for aught that hitherto appears, we may see with com placency the arrows of satire feathered with wit. weighted with sense, and discharged by a strong arm, fly home to their mark. Our conceptions of a pos- sible spiritual communion, though they are but nega- tive, and only preparatory to a faith in its actual existence, stand neither in the level nor the direction of the shafts. If it be objected, that Swift and Warburton did not choose openly to set up the interpretations of later and more rational divines against the decisions of their own Church, and from prudential considerations did not attack the doctrine in toto : that is their concern (T would answer), and it is more charitable to think otherwise. But we are in the silent school of reflec- tion, in the secret confessional of thought. Should we lie j or God, and that to our own thoughts? — They, indeed, who dare do the one, will soon be able to do the other. So did the comforters of Job: and to the divines, who resemble Job's comforters, we will leave both attempts. But, it may be said, a possible conception is not necessarily a true one ; nor even a probable one, where the facts can be otherwise explained. In the name of the supposed pupil I would reply — That is the very question I am preparing myself to examine; and am now seeking the vantage ground W 7 here I may best command the facts. In my own person, I w r ould ask the objector, whether he counted the declarations of Scripture among the facts to be explained. But both for myself and my pupil, and in behalf of all rational inquiry, I w 7 ould demand that the decision should not be such, in itself or in its effects, as would prevent our becoming acquainted with the most im- portant of these facts; nay, such as would for the MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 55 mind of the decider, preclude their very existence Unless ye believe, says the prophet, ye cannot under- stand. Suppose (what is at least possible) that the facts should be consequent on the belief, it is clear that without the belief the materials, on which the understanding is to exert itself, would be wanting. The reflections that naturally arise out of this last remark, are those that best suit the stage at which we last halted, and from which we now recommence our progress — the state of a moral man, who has already welcomed certain truths of religion, and is inquiring after other and more special doctrines : still, however, as a moralist, desirous, indeed, to receive them into combination with morality, but to receive them as its aid, not as its substitute. Now, to such a man I 6ay ; — Before you reject the opinions and doctrines asserted and enforced in the following extract from Leigh ton, and before you give way to the emotions of distaste or ridicule, which the prejudices of the circle in which you move, or your own familiarity with the mad perversions of the doctrine by fanatics in all ages, have connected with the very words, spirit, grace, gifts, operations, and the like, re-examine the arguments advanced in the first pages of this intro- ductory comment, and the simple and sober view of the doctrine, contemplated in the first instance as a mere idea of the reason, flowing naturally from the admission of an infinite omnipresent mind as the ground of the universe. Reflect again and again, and be sure that you understand the doctrine before you determine on rejecting it. That no false judg- ments, not extravagant conceits, no practical ill-conse- quences need arise out of the belief of the Spirit, and its possible communion with the spiritual principle in man, or can arise out of the right belief, or ere compatible with the doctrine truly and Scripturally 56 AIDS TO REFLECTION. explained, Leighton, and almost every single period in the passage here transcribed from him, will suffice to convince you. On the other hand, reflect on the consequences of rejecting it. For surely it is not the act of a reflect- ing mind, nor the part of a man of sense, to disown and cast out one tenet, and yet persevere in admitting and clinging to another that has neither sense nor purpose, but what supposes and rests on the truth and reality of the former. If you have resolved that all belief of a divine Comforter present to our inmost being and aiding our infirmities, is fond and fanati- cal, — if the Scriptures promising and asserting such communion are to be explained away into the action of circumstances, and the necessary movements of the vast machine, in one of the circulating chains of which the human will is a petty link ; — in what bet- ter light can prayer appear to you, than the groans of a wounded lion in his solitary den, or the howl of a dog with his eyes on the moon ? At the best, you can regard it only as a transient bewilderment of the social instinct, as a social habit misapplied. Unless indeed you should adopt the theory which I remem- ber to have read in the writings of the late Bishop Jebb, and for some supposed beneficial re-action of praying on the prayer's own mind, should practise it as a species of animal-magnetism to be brought about by a wilful eclipse of the reason, and a temporary make-believe on the part of the self-magnetiser ! At all events, do not pre-judge a doctrine, the uttei rejection of which must oppose a formidable obstacle to your acceptance of Christianity itself, when the books, from which alone we can learn what Chris tianity is and what it teaches, are so strangely written, that in a series of the most concerning points, inclu- ding (historical facts exceptod) all the peculiar tenets MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 5* of the religion, the plain and obvious meaning of th© words, that in which they were understood by learned and simple, for at least sixteen centuries, during the larger part of which the language was a living lan- guage, is no sufficient guide to their actual sense or to the writer's own meaning ! And this too, where the literal and received sense involves nothing impos- sible, or immoral, or contrary to reason. With such a persuasion, Deism would be a more consistent creed. But, alas ! even this will fail you. The utter rejec- tion of all present and living communion with the uni- versal Spirit impoverishes Deism itself, and renders it as cheerless as Atheism, from which indeed it would differ only by an obscure impersonation of what the atheist receives unpersonified under the name of Fate or Nature. APHORISM VII. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. The proper and natural effect, and in the absence of all disturbing or intercepting forces, the certain and sensible accompaniment of peace or reconcilement with God, is our own inward peace, a calm and quiet temper of mind. And where there is a consciousness of earnestly desiring, and of having sincerely striven after the former, the latter may be considered as a sense of its presence. In this case, I say, and for a soul watchful and under the discipline of the Gospel, the peace with a man's self may be the medium or organ through which the assurance of his peace with' God is conveyed. We will not therefore condemn this mode of speaking, though we dare not greatly recommend it. Be it, that there is, truly and in sobriety of speech, enough of just analogy in the sub- jects meant, to make this use of the words, if less than proper, yet something more than metaphorical ; 58 AIDS TO REFLECTION. still \vc must be cautious not to transfer to the object the defects or the deficiency of the organ, which must needs partake of the imperfections of the imperfect beings to whom it belongs. Not without the co-as- surance of other senses and of the same sense in other men, dare we affirm that what our eye beholds is verily there to be beholden. Much less may we conclude negatively, and from the inadequacy, or the suspension, or from any other affection of sight infer the non-existence, or departure, or changes of the thing itself. The chameleon darkens in the shade of him that bends over it to ascertain its colours. In like manner, but with yet greater caution, ought we to think respecting a tranquil habit of the inward life, considered as a spiritual sense, — a medial organ in and by which our peace with God, and the lively working of his grace on our spirit, are perceived by us. This peace which we have with God in Christ is inviolable ; but because the sense and persuasion of it may be interrupted, the soul that is truly at peace with God may for a time be disquieted in itself, through weakness of faith, or the strength of temp tation, or the darkness of desertion, losing sight of that grace, that love and light of God's countenance, on which its tranquillity and joy depend. Thou didst hide thy face, saith David, and I was troubled But when these eclipses are over, the soul is revived with new consolation, as the face of the earth is renewed and made to smile with the return of the sun in the spring ; and this ought always to uphold Christians in the saddest times, namely, that the grace and love of God towards them depend not on their sense, nor upon any thing in them, but is still in itself, incapable of the smallest alteration. A holy heart that gladly entertains grace, shall find that it and peace cannot dwell asunder ; while MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 59 an ungodly man may sleep to death in the lethargy of carnal presumption and impeniteney ; but a true, lively, solid peace, he cannot have. There is no peace, saith my God, to the wicked Isa. lvii. 21 APHORISM VIII. WORLDLY HOPES. LEIGHTON. Worldly hopes are not living, but lying hopes ; they die often before us, and we live to bury them, and see our own folly and infelicity in trusting to them ; but at the utmost, they die with us when we die, and can accompany us no further. But the lively hope, which is the Christian's portion, answers expectation to the full, and much beyond it, and deceives no way but in that happy way of far exceed- ing it. A living hope, living in death itself ! The world dares say no more for its device, than Bum spiro spero : but the children of God can add, by virtue of this living hope, Bum exspiro spero. APHORISM IX. THE WORLDLING'S FEAR. LEIGHTON. It is a fearful thing when a man and all his hopes die together. Thus saith Solomon of the wicked, Prov. xi. 7 — When he dieth, then die his hopes ; (many of them before, but at the utmost then, all of them ;) but the righteous hath hope in his death. Prov. xiv. 32.* * One of the numerous proofs against those who with a strange inconsistency hold the Old Testament to have been inspired throughout, and yet deny that the doctrine of future state is taught therein. 60 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM X. WORLDLY MIRTH. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. As he that taketh away a garment in cold weather, and as vinegar upon nitre, so is he that singeth songs to a heavy heart. Pro v. xxv. 20. Worldly mirth is so far from curing spiritual grief, that eveu worldly grief, where it is great and takes deep root, is not allayed but increased by it. A man who is full of inward heaviness, the more he is encompassed about with mirth, it exasperates and enrages his grief the more ; like ineffectual weak physic, which removes not the humour, but stirs it and makes it more un- quiet. But spiritual joy is seasonable for all estates ; in prosperity, it is pertinent to crown and sanctify all other enjoyments, with this which so far surpasses them ; and in distress, it is the only Nepenthe, the cordial of fainting spirits : so Psal. iv. 7, He hath put joy into my heart. This mirth makes way for itself, which other mirth cannot do. These songs are sweetest in the night of distress. There is something exquisitely beautiful and touch- ing in the first of these similies : and the second, though less pleasing to the imagination, has the charm of propriety, and expresses the transition with equal force and liveliness. A grief of recent birth is a sick infant that must have its medicine administered in its milk, and sad thoughts are the sorrowful heart's natural food. This is a complaint that is not to be cured by opposites, which for the most part only reverse the symptoms while they exasperate the disease — or like a rock in the mid channel of a river swoln by a sudden rain-flush from the mountain, which only detains the excess of waters from their proper outlet, and makes them foam, roar, and eddy. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 61 The soul in her desolation hugs the sorrow close to her, as her sole remaining garment : and this must he drawn off so gradually, and the garment to he put in its stead so gradually slipt on and feel so like the former, that the sufferer shall he sensible of the change only by the refreshment. The true spirit of consolation is well content to detain the tear in the eye, and finds a surer pledge of its success in the smile of resignation that dawns through that, than in the liveliest shows of a forced and alien exhilaration. APHORISM XI. Plotinus thanked God, that his soul was not tied \o an immortal body. APHORISM XII. 1E1GHTON jLND COLERIDGE. What a full confession do we make of our dissatis- faction with the objects of our bodily senses, that in our attempts to express what we conceive the best of beings, and the greatest of felicities to be, we de- scribe by the exact contraries of all that we experi- ence here— the one as infinite, incomprehensible, immutable ; the other as incorruptible, undefiled, and that passeth not away. At all events, this co- incidence, say rather, identity of attributes, is suffi- cient to apprise us, that to be inheritors of bliss, we must become the children of God. This remark of Leighton's is ingenious and start- ling. Another, and more fruitful, perhaps more solid, inference from the fact would be, that there is some- thing in the human mind which makes it know (as soon as it is sufficiently awakened to reflect on its own thoughts and notices), that in all finite quantity there is an infinite, in all measure of time an eternal ; !52 AIDS TO REFLECTION. that the latter are the basis, the substance, the true and abiding reality of the former ; and that as we truly are, only as far as God is with us, so neither can we truly possess — that is, enjoy — our being or any other real good, but by living in the sense of his holy presence. A life of wickedness is a life of lies ; and an evil being, or the being of evil, the last and darkest mystery. APHORISM XIII. THE WISEST USE OF THE IMAGINATION. LEIGHTOK. It is not altogether unprofitable, — yea, it is great wisdom in Christians to be arming themselves against such temptations as may befall them hereafter, though they have not as yet met with them ; to labour to overcome them before-hand, to suppose the hardest things that may be incident to them, and to put on the strongest resolutions they can attain unto. Yet all that is but an imaginary effort ; and therefore there is no assurance that the victory is any more than imaginary too, till it come to action, and then, they that have spoken and thought very confidently, may prove but (as one said of the Athenians) fortes in tabula, patient and courageous in picture or fancy; and, notwithstanding all their arms, and dexterity in handling them by way of exercise, may be foully defeated when they are to fight in earnest. APHORISM XIY. THE LANGUAGE OP SCRIPTURE. The word of God speaks to men, and therefore it speaks the language of the children of men. This just and pregnant thought was suggested to Leighton MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORIbMS. C3 by Gen. xxii. 12. The same text has led me to unfold and expand the remark — On moral subjects, the Scriptures speak in the language of the affections which they excite in us; on sensible objects, neither metaphysically, as they are known by superior intel ligences ; nor theoretically, as they would be seen by us were we placed in the sun ; but as they are repre sented by our human senses in our present relative position. Lastly, from no vain, or worse than vain, ambition of seeming to walk on the sea of mystery in my way to truth, but in the hope of removing a difficulty that presses heavily on the minds of many who in heart and desire are believers, and which long pressed on my own mind, I venture to add : that on spiritual things, and allusively to the myste- rious union or conspiration of the divine with the human in the spirits of the just, spoken of in Horn. viii. 27, the word of God attributes the language of the spirit sanctified to the Holy One, the Sanctifier. Now the spirit in man (that is, the will) knows its own state in and by its acts alone : even as in geo- metrical reasoning the mind knows its constructive faculty in the act of constructing, and contemplates the act in the product (that is, the mental figure or diagram) which is inseparable from the act and co- instantaneous. Let the reader join these two positions : first, that the divine Spirit acting in the human will is described as one with the will so filled and actuated : secondly, that our actions are the means, by which alone the will becomes assured of its own state : and he will understand, though he may not perhaps adopt my suggestion, that the verse, in which God speaking of himself, says to Abraham, Now I know that thou fewest God, seeing thou hast not withheld thy son, thy only son y from me — may be more than merely G4 AIDS TO REFLECTION. figurative. An accommodation I grant: but in the thing expressed, and not altogether in the expres sions. In arguing with infidels, or with the weak in faith, it is a part of religious prudence, no less than of religious morality, to avoid whatever looks like an evasion. To retain the literal sense, wherever the harmony of Scripture permits, and reason does not forbid, is ever the honester, and, nine times in ten, the more rational and pregnant interpretation. The contrary plan is an easy and approved way of getting rid of a difficulty ; but nine times in ten a bad way of solving it. But alas ! there have been too many commentators who are content not to understand a text themselves, if only they can make the reader believe they do. Of the figures of speech in the sacred Volume, that are only figures of speech, the one of most frequent occurrence is that which describes an effect by the name of its most usual and best known cause : the pas- sages, for instance, in which grief, fury, repentance, and the like, are attributed to the Deity. But these are far enough from justifying the (I had almost said, dishonest) fashion of metaphorical glosses, in as well as out of the Church ; and which our fashionable divines have carried to such an extent, as in the doctrinal part of their creed, to leave little else but metaphors.* APHORISM XY. THE CHRISTIAN NO STOIC. LEIGHTOK AND OOLERIDGE. Seek not altogether to dry up the stream of sorrow but to bound it and keep it within its banks. Religion cloth not destroy the life of nature, but adds to it a life more excellent; yea, it doth not only permit, * See Lit. Remains, L p. Z2L— Ed. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. C5 but requires some feeling of afflictions. Instead of patience, there is in some men an affected pride of spirit, suitable only to the doctrine of the Stoics as it is usually taken. They strive not to feel at all the afflictions that are on them ; but where there is no feeling at all, there can be no patience. Of the sects of ancient philosophy the Stoic is perhaps, the nearest to Christianity. Yet even to this sect Christianity is fundamentally opposite. For the Stoic attaches the highest honour (or rather, attaches honour solely) to the person that acts vir- tuously in spite of his feelings, or who has raised himself above the conflict by their extinction ; while Christianity instructs us to place small reliance on a virtue that does not begin by bringing the feelings to a conformity with the commands of the conscience. Its especial aim, its characteristic operation, is to moralize the affections. The feelings that oppose a right act must be wrong feelings. The act, indeed, whatever the agents feelings might be, Christianity would command : and under certain circumstances would both command and commend it — commend it, as a healthful symptom in a sick patient ; and com- mand it, as one of the ways and means of changing the feelings, or displacing them by calling up the opposite. COROLLARIES TO APHORISM XV. I. The more consciousness in our thoughts and words, and the less in our impulses and general actions, the better and more healthful the state both of head and heart. As the flowers from an orange tree in its time of blossoming, that burgeon forth, expand, fall, and are momently replaced, such is the sequence of hourly and momently charities in a pure and gracious soul. The modern fiction which depic- 6(5 AIDS TO REFLECTION, tures the son of Cytherea with a bandage round his eyes, is not without a spiritual meaning. There is a sweet and holy blindness in Christian love even as there is a blindness of life, yea, and of genius too, in the moment of productive energy. II. Motives are symptoms of weakness, and sup- plements for the deficient energy of the living prin- ciple, the law within us. Let them then be reserved for those momentous acts and duties in which the strongest and best balanced natures must feel them- selves deficient, and where humility, no less than prudence, prescribes deliberation. We find a simi- litude of this, I had almost said a remote analogy, in organised bodies. The lowest class of animals or protozoa, the polypi for instance, have neither brain nor nerves. Their motive powers are all from without. The sun, light, the warmth, the air, are their nerves and brain. As life ascends, nerves appear; but- still only as the conductors of an external influence: next are seen the knots or ganglions, as so msiujfoci of instinctive agency, which imperfectly imitate the yet wanting centre. And now the promise and token of a true individuality are disclosed * both the reservoir of sensibility and the imitative power that actuates the organs of motion (the muscles) with the network of conductors, are all taken inward and appropriated ; the spontaneous rises into the voluntary, and finally after various steps and a long ascent, the material and animal means and conditions are prepared for the manifestations of a free will, having its law within itself and its motive in the law — and thus bound to originate its own acts, not only without, but even against, alien stimulants. That in our present state we have only the dawning of this inward sun (the perfect law of liberty) will sufficiently limit and qualify the preceding position, if only it have been MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 67 allowed to produce its two-fold consequence — the excitement of hope and the repression of vanity.* APHORISM XYI. LE1GHTOS. As excessive eating or drinking both makes the body sickly and lazy, fit for nothing but sleep, and besots the mind, as it clogs up with crudities the way through which the spirits should pass,t bemiring them, and making them move heavily, as a coach in a deep way ; thus doth all immoderate use of the world and its delights wrong the soul in its spiritual condition, makes it sickly and feeble, full of spiritual distempers and inactivity, benumbs the graces of the Spirit, and fills the soul with sleepy vapours, makes it grow secure and heavy in spiritual exercises, and obstructs the way and motion of the Spirit of God, in the soul. Therefore, if you would be spiritual, healthful and vigorous, and enjoy much of the conso- lations of Heaven, be sparing and sober in those of the earth, and what you abate of the one, shall be certainly made up in the other. * The reader is referred, upon the subject of this remark- able paragraph, to Mr. Joseph Henry Green's Becapitulatory Lecture, p. 110, Vital Dynamics, 1840 ; — a volume of singular worth and importance. — Ed. f Technical phrases of an obsolete system will yet retain their places, nay, acquire universal currency, and become sterling in the language, when they at once represent the feel- ings, and give an apparent solution of them by visual images easily managed by the fancy. Such are many terms and phrases from the humoral physiology long exploded, but which are far more popular than any description would be from the theory that has taken its place. F2 68 AIDS TO REFLECTION, APHORISM XVII. INCONSISTENCY. IEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. It is a most unseemly and unpleasant thing, to see a man's life full of ups and downs, one step like a Christian, and another like a worldling ; it cannot choose but both pain himself and mar the edification of others. The same sentiment, only with a special applica- tion to the maxims and measures of our cabinet states- men, has been finely expressed by a sage poet of the preceding generation, in lines which no generation will find inapplicable or superannuated. God and the world we worship both together, Draw not our laws to Him, but His to ours ; Untrue to both, so prosperous in neither, The imperfect will brings forth but barren flowers ! Unwise as all distracted interests be, Strangers to God, fools in humanity : Too good for great things, and too great for good, "While still "I dare not" waits upon " I wou'd." APHORISM XVII. CONTINUED. THE ORDINARY MOTIVE TO INCONSISTENCY. LEIGHTON. What though the polite man count thy fashion a little odd and too precise, it is because he knows nothing above that model of goodness which he hath set himself, and therefore approves of nothing beyond it : he knows not God, and therefore doth not discern and esteem what is most like Him. When courtiers come down into the country, the common home-bred MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 69 people possibly think their habit strange ; but they care not for that, it is the fashion at court. What need, then, that Christians should be so tender-fore- headed, as to be put out of countenance because the world looks on holiness as a singularity; it is the only fashion in the highest court, yea, of the King of kings himself. APHORISM XVIII. SUPERFICIAL RECONCILIATIONS, AND SELF-DECEIT IN FORGIVING. LEIGHTON. "When, after variances, men are brought to an agreement, they are much subject to this, rather to cover their remaining malices with superficial verbal forgiveness, than to dislodge them and free the heart of them. This is a poor self-deceit. As the philoso- pher said to him, who being ashamed that he was espied by him in a tavern in the outer-room, with- drew himself to%the inner, " That is not the way out; the more you go that way, you will be the further in :" — so when hatreds are upon admonition not thrown out, but retire inward to hide themselves, they grow 7 deeper and stronger than before ; and those constrained semblances of reconcilement are but a false healing, do but skin the wound over, and there- fore it usually breaks forth worse again. APHORISM XIX. OF THE WORTH AND THE DUTIES OF THE PREACHER. LEIGHTON. The stream of custom and our profession bring us to the preaching of the Word, and we sit out our hour under the sound : but how few consider and prize it 70 AIDS TO REFLECTION. as the great ordinance of God for the salvation of souls, the beginner and the sustainer of the divine life of grace within us ! And certainly, until we have these thoughts of it, and seek to feel it thus ourselves, although we hear it most frequently, and let slip no occasion, yea, hear it with attention and some present delight, yet still we miss the right use of it, and turn it from its true end, while we take it not as that in- grafted ivord which is able to save our souls. (James i. 91.) Thus ought they who preach to speak the word ; to endeavour their utmost to accommodate it to this end, that sinners may be converted, begotten again, and believers nourished and strengthened in their spiritual life ; to regard no lower end, but aim steadily at that mark. Their hearts and tongues ought to be set on fire with holy zeal for God and love to souls, kindled by the Holy Ghost, that came down on the Apostles in the shape of fiery tongues. And those that hear should remember this as the end of their hearing, that they may receive spiritual life and strength by the word. For though it seems a poor despicable business, that a frail sinful man like yourselves should speak a few words in your hearing, yet, look upon it as the way wherein God communicates happiness to those who believe, and works that believing unto happiness, alters the whole frame of the soul, and makes a new creation as it begets it again to the inheritance of glory, — consider it thus, which is its true notion ; and then what can be so precious ? APHORISM XX. LSfitOHTON. The difference is great in our natural life, in some persons especially ; that they who in infancy were so MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 71 feeble, and wrapped up as others in swaddling clothes, yet afterwards come to excel in wisdom and in the knowledge of sciences, or to be commanders of great armies, or to be kings : but the distance is far greater and more admirable betwixt the small beginnings of grace, and our after-perfection, that fulness of knowledge that we look for, and that crown of immortality, which all they are born to who are born to God. But as in the faces or actions of some children, characters and presages of their after-greatness have appeared — as a singular beauty in Moses' face, as they write of him, and as Cyrus was made king among the shepherds' children with whom he was brought up, — so also, certainly, in these children of God, there be some characters and evidences that they are born for Heaven by their new birth. That holiness and meekness, that patience and faith which shine in the actions and sufferings of the saints, are characters of their Father's image, and show their high original, and foretel their glory to come ; such a glory as doth not only surpass the world's thoughts, but the thoughts of the children of God themselves. 1 John hi. 2. This Aphorism would, it may seem, have been, placed more fitly in the Chapter following. In placing it here, I have been determined by the foJ lowing convictions : 1. Every state, and consequently that which we have described as the state of religious morality, which is not progressive, is dead or retro- grade. 2. As a pledge of this progression, or, at least, as the form in which the propulsive tendency shows itself, there are certain hopes, aspirations, yearnings, that with more or less of consciousness VZ AIDS TO EEFLECTIOX. rise and stir in the heart of true morality as naturally as the sap in the full-formed stem of a rose flows towards the bud, within which the flower is maturing o. No one, whose own experience authorises him to confirm the truth of this statement, can have been conversant with the volumes of religious biography, can have perused for instance the lives of Cranmer, Ridley, Latimer, Wish art, Sir Thomas More, Bernard Gilpin, Bishop Bedel, or of Egede, Swartz, and the missionaries of the frozen world, without an occasional conviction, that these men lived under extraordinary influences, which in each instance and in all ages of the Christian sera, bear the same characters, and both in the acjjompaniments and the results evidently refer to a common origin. And what can this be ? is the question that must needs force itself on the mind in the first moment of reflection on a fact so interest- ing and apparently so anomalous. The answer is as necessarily contained in one or the other of two assumptions. These influences are either the product of delusion — insania amabilis, and the reaction of disordered nerves — or they argue the existence of a relation to some real agency, distinct from what i3 experienced or acknowledged by the world at large for which as not merely natural on the one hand, and yet not assumed to be miraculous-'' on the other, w r e have no apter name than spiritual. Now, if neither analogy justifies, nor the moral feelings permit, the former assumption, and we decide therefore in favour of the reality of a state other and higher than the mere moral man, whose * In chock of fanatical pretensions, it is expedient to confine the term miraculous, to cases where the senses are appealed to, in proof of something that transcends the expe- rience derived from the senses. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 73 religion * consists in morality, has attained under these convictions ; can the existence of a transitional state appear other than probable ; or that these very convictions, when accompanied by correspondent dis- positions and stirrings of the heart, are among the marks and indications of such a state ? And thinking it not unlikely that among the readers of this Volume, there may be found some individuals, whose inward state, though disquieted by doubts and oftener still perhaps by blank misgivings, may, nevertheless, be- token the commencement of a transition from a not irreligious morality to a spiritual religion, — with a view to their interests I placed this Aphorism under the present head. APHORISM XXI. LEIGHTOtf. The most approved teachers of wisdom, in a human way, have required of their scholars, that to the end their minds might be capable of it, they should be purified from vice and wickedness. And it was Socrates' custom, when any one asked him a question, seeking to be informed by him, before he would answer them, he asked them concerning their own qualities and course of life, * For let it not be forgotten, that Morality, as distinguished from Prudence, implying (it matters uot under what name, whether of honour, or duty, or conscience, still, I say, im- plying^ and being grounded id, an awe of the invisible and a confidence therein beyond (nay, occasionally in apparent contradiction to) the inductions of outward experience, ia essentially religious. 74 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XXII. KNOWLEDGE NOT THE ULTIMATE END OF RELIGIOUS PURSUITS. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. The hearing and reading of the word, under which I comprise theological studies generally, are alike defective when pursued without increase of knowledge, and w r hen pursued chiefly for increase of know- ledge. To seek no more than a present delight, that evanishes with the sound of the words that die in the air, is not to desire the word as meat, but as music, as God tells the prophet Ezekiel of his people. Ezek, xxxiii. 32. And lo, thoa art unto them as a very lovely song of one that hath a pleasant voice, and can flay well upon an instrument ; for they hear thy words, and they do them not. To desire the word for the increase of knowledge, although this is necessary and commendable, and, being rightly qua- lified, is a part of spiritual accretion, yet, take it as going no further, it is not the true end of the word. Nor is the venting of that knowledge in speech and frequent discourse of the word and the divine truths that are in it; which, where it is governed with Christian prudence, is not to be despised, but com- mended ; yet, certainly, the highest knowledge, and the most frequent and skilful speaking of the word severed from the growth here mentioned, misses the true end of the word. If any one's head or tongue should grow apace, and all the rest stand at a stay, it would certainly make him a monster ; and they are no other, who are knowing and discoursing Christians, and grow daily in that respect, hut not at all in holi ness of heart and life, which is the proper growth of the children of God. Apposite to their case is Epictetus's comparison of the sheep; they return not what thev eat in grass- but in wool. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS, 75 APHORISM XXIII. THE SUM OF CHURCH HISTORY. LE1GHTOS. In times of peace, the Church may dilate more, and build as it were into breadth, but in times of trouble, it arises more in height ; it is then built upwards : as in cities where men are straitened, they build usually higher than in the country. APHORISM XXIV. WORTHY TO BE FRAMED AND HUNG UP IN THE LIBRARY OF EVERY THEOLOGICAL STUDENT. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. Where there is a great deal of smoke and no clear flame, it argues much moisture in the matter, yet it witnesseth certainly that there is fire there; and therefore dubious questioning is a much better evidence, than that senseless deaclness which most take for believing. Men that know nothing in sciences, have no doubts. He never truly believed, who was not made first sensible and convinced of unbelief. Never be afraid to doubt, if only you have - the disposition to believe, and doubt in order that you may end in believing the truth. I will venture to add in my own name and from my own conviction the following : APHORISM XXY. He, who begins by loving Christianity better 'than truth, will proceed by loving his own sect or church better than Christianity, and end in loving himself better than all. AIDS TO KEFLECTION. APHORISM XXYI. THE ABSENCE OF DISPUTES, AND A GENERAL AVERSION TO RELIGIOUS CONTROVERSIES, NO PROOF OF TRUE UNANIMITY. I.EIGHTOX AND COLERIDGE. The boasted peaceableness about questions of faith too often proceeds from a superficial temper, and not seldom from a supercilious disdain of whatever has no marketable use or value, and from indifference to religion itself. Toleration is a herb of spontaneous growth in the soil of indifference ; but the weed has none of the virtues of the medicinal plant, reared by humility in the garden of zeal. Those, who regard religions as matters of taste, may consistently include all religious differences in the old adage, De gustibus non est disputandum. And many there be among these of Gallio's temper, who care for none of these things, and who account all questions in religion, as he did, but matter of words and names. And by this all religions may agree together. But that were not a natural union produced by the active heat of the spirit, but a confusion rather, arising from the want of it ; not a knitting together, but a freezing together, as cold congregates all bodies how heterogeneous soever, sticks, stones, and water ; but heat makes first a separation of different things, and then unites those that are of the same nature. Much of our common union of minds, I fear, pro- ceeds from no other than the aforementioned causes, want of knowledge, and want of affection to religion. You that boast you live conformably to the appoint- ments of the Church, and that uo one hears of your noise, we may thank the ignorance of your minds for that kind of quietness. The preceding extract is particularly entitled to our serious reflections, as in a tenfold degree more MORAL AND RELIC IOCS APHORISMS. 77 applicable to the present times than to the age in which it was written. We all know, that lovers are apt to take offence and wrangle on occasions that per- haps are but trifles, and which assuredly would appear such to those who regard love itself as folly. These quarrels may, indeed, be no proof of wisdom ; but still, in the imperfect state of our nature the entire absence of the same, and this too on far more serious provocations, would excite a strong suspicion of a comparative indifference in the parties who can love so coolly where they profess to love so well. I shall believe our present religious tolerancy to proceed from the abundance of our charity and good sense, when I see proofs that we are equally cool and forbearing as litigants and political partisans. APHORISM XXVII. the influence of worldly views (or what are called a man's prospects in life), the bane of the chris- tian MINISTRY. LEIGHTON. It is a base, poor thing for a man to seek himself: far below that royal dignity that is here put upon Christians, and that priesthood joined with it. Under the law, those who were squint-eyed were incapable of the priesthood : truly, this squinting toward our own interest, the looking aside to that, in God's affairs especially, so deforms the face of the soul, that it makes it altogether unworthy the honour of this spiritual priesthood. Oh ! this is a large task, an infinite task. The several creatures bear their part in this ; the sun says somewhat, and moon and stars, yea, the lowest have some share in it ; the very plants and herbs of the field speak of God ; and yet, the very highest and best, yea all of them together, the whole concert of heaven and earth cannot show 4 V AIDS TO KEFLECTION. forth all His praise to the full. No, it is but a part, the smallest part of that glory, which they caa reach. APHORISM XXVIII. DESPISE NONE : DESPAIR OF NONE. LEIGHTON". The Jews would not willingly tread upon the smallest piece of paper in their way, but took it up : for possibly, said they, the name of God may be on it. Though there was a little superstition in this, yet truly there is nothing but good religion in it, if we apply it to men. Trample not on any ; there may be some work of grace there, that thou knowest not of. The name of God may be written upon that soul thou treadest on ; it may be a soul that Christ thought so much of, as to give His precious blood for it; therefore despise it not. APHORISM XXIX. MEN OP LEAST MERIT MOST APT TO BE CONTEMPTUOUS BE- CAUSE MOST IGNORANT AND MOST OVERWEENING OF THEMSELVES. LEIGHTCN. Too many take the ready course to deceive them- selves; for they look with both eyes on the failings and defects of others, and scarcely give their good qualities half an eye, while, on the contrary, in themselves, they study to the full their own advan- tages, and their weaknesses and defects (as one says), they skip over, as children do their hard words in their lesson, that are troublesome to read : and making this uneven parallel, what wonder if the result be a gross mistake of themselves ! MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 70 APHORISM XXX. Vanity may strut in rags, and humility ee arrayed in PUBPLE AND FINE LINEN. LEIGHT0X . It is not impossible that there may be in some an affected pride in the meanness of apparel, and in others, under either neat or rich attire, a very humble unaffected mind : using it upon some of the afore- mentioned engagements, or such like, and yet, the heart not at all upon it. Magnus qui fictilibus utitur tanquam argento, nee ille minor qui argento tanquam fictilibus, says Seneca : Great is he who enjoys his earthenware as if it were plate, and not less great is the man to whom all his plate is no more than earthenware. APHOKISM XXXI. OF DETRACTION AMONG RELIGIOUS PROFESSORS. LEIGHTON AND COLEEEDGE. They who have attained to a self-pleasing pitch of civility or formal religion, have usually that point of presumption with it, that they make their own size the model and rule to examine all by. What is below it, they condemn indeed as profane ; but what is beyond it, they account needless and affected preciseness : and therefore are as ready as others to let fly invectives or bitter taunts against it, which are the keen and poisoned shafts of the tongue, and a persecution that shall be called to a strict account. The slanders, perchance, may not be altogether forged or untrue ; they may be the implements, not the inventions, of malice. But they do not on this account escape the guilt of detraction. Rather, it is characteristic of the evil spirit in question, to work by the advantage of real faults ; but these stretched 80 AIDS TO REFLECTION. and aggravated to the utmost. It is not expressible HOW DEEP A WOUND A TONGUE SHARPENED TO THIS WORK WILL GIVE, WITH NO NOISE AND A VERY LITTLE word. This is the true white gunpowder, which the dreaming projectors of silent mischiefs and insensible poisons sought for in the laboratories of art and nature, in a world of good ; but which was to be found in its most destructive form, in the world of evil, the tongue. APHORISM XXXII. THE REMEDY. LEIGHTON. All true remedy must begin at the heart; other- wise it will be but a mountebank cure, a false imagined conquest. The weights and wheels are there, and the clock strikes according to their motion. Even he that speaks contrary to what is within him, guile- fully contrary to his inward conviction and knowledge, yet speaks conformably to what is within him in the temper and frame of his heart, which is double, a heart and a heart, as the Psalmist hath it, Psal. xii. 2. APHORISM XXXIII. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. It is an argument of a candid ingenuous mind, to delight in the good name and commendations of others ; to pass by their defects and take notice of their virtues; and to speak and hear of those willingly, and not endure either to speak or hear of the other ; for in this indeed you may be little less guilty than the evil speaker, in taking pleasure in it, though you speak it not. He that willingly drinks in tales and calumnies, will, from the delight he hath in evil hearing, slide insensibly into the humour of evil peaking. It is strange how most persons dispense MURAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. SI with themselves in this point, and that in scarcely any societies shall we find a hatred of this ill, hut rather some tokens of taking pleasure in it ; and until a Christian sets himself to an inward watchful- ness over his heart, not suffering in it any thought that is uncharitable, or vain self-esteem, upon the sight of others' frailties, he will still be subject to somewhat of this, in the tongue or ear at least. So, then, as for the evil of guile in the tongue, a sincere heart, truth in the inward parts, powerfully redresses *t; therefore it is expressed, Psal. xv. 2, That speaketh the truth from his heart ; thence it flows Seek much after this, to speak nothing with God, nor msn, but what is the sense of a single unfeigned heart. sweet truth ! excellent but rare sincerity ! He that loves that truth within, and who is Himself at once the truth and the life, He alone can work it there ! Seek it of him. It is characteristic of the Roman dignity and so- briety that, in the Latin, to favour with the tongue (favere lingua) means, to be silent. We say, Hold your tongue ! as if it were an injunction, that could not be carried into effect but by manual force, or the pincers of the forefinger and thumb! And verily — I blush to say it — it is not women and Frenchmen only that would rather have their tongues bitten than bitted, and feel their souls in a strait- waistcoat, when they are obliged to remain silent. APHORISM XXXIT. ON THE PASSION FOR NEW AND STRIKING THOUGHTS. LEIGHTOS. In conversation seek not so much either to venV thy knowledge, or to increase it, as to know more spiritually and effectually what thou dost know. And in this way those mean despised truths, that every 82 AIDS TO REFLECTION. one thinks he is sufficiently seen in, will have a new sweetness and use in them, which thou didst not so vvell perceive before — (for these flowers cannot be sucked dry) ; and in this humble sincere way thou shalt grow in grace and in knowledge too. APHORISM XXXV. THE RADICAL DIFFERENCE BETWEEN THE GOOD MAN AND THE VICIOUS MAN. LEIGRTON AND COLERIDGE. The godly man hates the evil he possibly b) temptation hath been drawn to do, and loves the good he is frustrated of, and, having intended, hath not attained to do. The sinner, who hath his denomi- nation from sin as his course, hates the good which sometimes he is forced to do, and loves that sin which many times he does not, either wanting occa- sion and means, so that he cannot do it, or through the check of an enlightened conscience possibly dares not do ; and though so bound up from the act, as a dog in a chain, yet the habit, the natural inclination and desire in him, is still the same, the strength of his affection is carried to sin. So in the weakest sincere Christian, there is that predominant sincerity and desire of holy walking, according to which he is called a righteous person : the Lord is pleased to give him that name, and account him so, being upright in heart though often failing. Leigh ton adds, " There is a righteousness of a higher strain." I do not ask the reader s full assent to this position : I do not suppose him as yet prepared to yield it. But thus much he will readily admit, that here, if any where, we are to seek the fine line which, like stripes of light in light, distinguishes, not divides, the summit of religious morality from spiritual religion. MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHOBISMS. 83 " A righteousness (Leighton continues), that is not in him, but upon him. He is clothed with it."' This, Header ! is the controverted doctrine, so warmly as- serted and so bitterly decried under the name of imputed righteousness. Our learned archbishop, you see, adopts it; and it is on this account princi* pally, that by many of our leading churchmen his orthodoxy has been more than questioned, and hia name put in the list of proscribed divines, as a Calvinist. That Leighton attached a definite sense to the words above quoted, it vrould be uncandid to doubt ; and the general spirit of his writings leads me to presume that it was compatible with the eternal distinction between things and persons, and therefore opposed to modern Calvinism. But what it was, I have not, I own, been able to discover. The sense, however, in which I think he might have received this doctrine, and in which I avow myself a believer in it, I shall have an opportunity of showing in another place. My present object is to open out the road by the removal of prejudices, so far at least as to throw some disturbing doubts on the secure taking- for-granted, that the peculiar tenets of the Christian faith asserted in the Articles and Homilies of our national Church are in contradiction to the common sense of mankind. And with this view (and not in the arrogant expectation or wish, that a mere ipse dixit should be received for argument) — I here avow my conviction, that the doctrine of imputed righteous- ness, rightly and Scripturally interpreted, is so far from being either irrational or immoral, that reason itself prescribes the idea in order to give a meaning and an ultimate object to morality; and that the moral law in the conscience demands its reception in order to give reality and substantive existence to the idea presented by the reason. g2 84 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XXXYI. LEIGHTOK. Your blessedness is not,- — no, believe it, it is not where most of you seek it, in things below you. How can that be ? It must be a higher good to make you happy. COMMENT. Every rank of creatures, as it ascends in the scale of creation, leaves death behind it or under it. The metal at its height of being seems a mute prophecy of the coming vegetation, into a mimic semblance of which it crystallises. The blossom and flower, the acme of vegetable life, divides into correspondent organs with reciprocal functions, and by instinctive motions and approximations seems impatient of that fixure, by which it is differenced in kind from the flower-shaped Psyche, that flutters with free wing above it. And wonderfully in the insect realm doth the irritability, the proper seat of instinct, while yet the nascent sensibility is subordinated thereto — most wonderfully, I say, doth the muscular life in the insect, and the musculo-arterial in the bird, imitate and typically rehearse the adaptive understanding, yea, and the moral affections and charities, of man. Let us carry ourselves back, in spirit, to the myste- rious week, the teeming work-days of the Creator ; as they rose in vision before the eye of the inspired historian of the generations of the heavens and of the earth, in the day that the Lord God made the earth and the heavens.* And who that hath watched their ways with an understanding heart, could, as the vision evolving still advanced towards him, contem- plate the filial and loyal Bee ; the home-building, * Gen. ii. L—Ed. MOI&.'L AKD RELIGIOUS APHOKISMS. 85- wedded, and divorceless Swallow ; and above all the manifoldly intelligent* Ant tribes, with their com- monwealths and confederacies, their warriors and miners, the husbandfolk, that fold in their tiny flocks on the honeyed-leaf, and the virgin sisters with the holy instincts of maternal love, detached and in selfless purity — and not say to himself, Behold the shadow of approaching humanity, the sun rising from behind, in the kindling morn of creation ! Thus all lower natures find their highest good in semblances and seekings of that which is higher and better. All things strive to ascend, and ascend in their striving. And shall man alone stoop ? Shall his pursuits and desires, the reflections of his inward life, be like the reflected image of a tree on the edge of a pool, that grows downward, and seeks a mock heaven in the unstable element beneath it, in neigh bourhood with the slim water weeds and oozy bottom- grass that are yet better than itself and more noble, in as far as substances that appear as shadows are preferable to shadows mistaken for substance ! No ! it must be a higher good to make you happy. While you labour for any thing below your proper humanity, you seek a happy life in the region of death. Well saith the moral poet — Unless above himself he can Erect himself, how mean a thing is man ! APHORISM XXXVII. LEIOHTON. There is an imitation of men that is impious and wicked, which consists in taking the copy of their sins. Again, there is an imitation which though not * See Huber on Bees, and on Ants. 80 AIDS TO BEFLECTION. so grossly evil, yet is poor and servile, being in mean things, yea, sometimes descending to imitate the very imperfections of others, as fancying some come- liness in them : as some of Basil's scholars, who imitated his slow speaking, which he had a little in the extreme, and could not help. But this is always laudable, and worthy of the best minds, to be imitators of that which is good, wheresoever they find it ; for that stays not in any man's person, as the ultimate pattern, but rises to the highest grace, being man's nearest likeness to God, His image and re- semblance, bearing His stamp and superscription, and belonging peculiarly to Him, in what hand soever it be found, as carrying the mark of no other owner than Him. APHORISM XXXYIII. LEIGHTON. Those who think themselves high-spirited, and will bear least, as they speak, are often, even by that, forced to bow most, or to burst under it ; while humility and meekness escape many a burden, and many a blow, always keeping peace within, and often without too. APHORISM XXXIX. LEIGHTGN. Our condition is universally exposed to fears and troubles, and no man is so stupid but he studies and projects for some fence against them, some bulwark to break the incursion of evils, and so to bring his mind to some ease, ridding it of the fear of them. Thus, men seek safety in the greatness, or multitude, or supposed faithfulness, of friends ; they seek by any means to be strongly underset this way, to have many, and powerful, and trust-worthy friends. But MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 87 wiser men, perceiving the unsafe ty and vanity of these and all external things, have cast about for some higher course. They see a necessity of with- drawing a man from externals, which do nothing but mock and deceive those most who trust most to them ; but they cannot tell whither to direct him. The best of them bring him into himself, and think to quiet him so, but the truth is, he finds as little to support him there ; there is nothing truly strong enough within him, to hold out against the many sorrows and fears which still from without do assault him. So then, though it is well done, to call off a man from outward things, as moving sands, that he build not on them, yet this is not enough ; for his ow r n spirit is as unsettled a piece as is in all the world, and must have some higher strength than its own, to fortify and fix it. This is the way that is here taught, Fear not their fear, hut sanctify the Lord your God in your hearts ; and if you can attain this latter, the former will follow of itself. APHORISM XL. WORLDLY TROUBLES IDOLS. LEIGHT02T. The too ardent love or self-willed desire of power, or wealth, or credit in the world, is (an Apostle has assured us) idolatry. Now among the words or synonymes for idols in the Hebrew language, there is one that in its primary sense signifies troubles (tegirim), other two that signify terrors (miphletzeth and emim). And so it is certainly. All our idols prove so to us. They fill us with nothing but anguish and troubles, with cares and fears, that are good for nothing but to be fit punishments of the folly, out of which they arise. 88 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XLI. ON THE RIGHT TREATMENT OF INFIDELS. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. A regardless contempt of infidel writings is usually the fittest answer ; Spreta vilescerent. But where the holy profession of Christians is likely to receive either the main or the indirect blow, and a word of defence may do any thing to ward it off, there we ought not to spare to do it. Christian prudence goes a great way in the regu- lating of this. Some are not capable of receiving rational answers, especially in divine things ; they were not only lost upon them, but religion dishonoured by the contest. Of this sort are the vulgar railers at religion, the foul-mouthed beliers of the Christian faith and his- tory. Impudently false and slanderous assertions can be met only by assertions of their impudent and slanderous falsehood : and Christians will not, must not, condescend to this. How can mere railing be answered by them who are forbidden to return a rail ing answer? Whether, or on what provocations, such offenders may be punished or coerced on the score of incivility, and ill-neighbourhood, and for abatement of a nuisance, as in the case of other scolds and endangerers of the public peace, must be trusted to the discretion of the civil magistrate. Even then there is danger of giving them importance, and flattering their vanity, by attracting attention to their works, if the punishment be slight ; and if severe, of spreading far and wide their reputation as martyrs, as the smell of a dead dog at a distance is said to change into that of musk. Experience hitherto seems to favour the plan of treating these betes puantes MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 89 and enfans de D table, as their four-footed brethren, the skink and squash, are treated' 1 ' by American woodmen, who turn their backs upon the fetid intruder, and make appear not to see him, even at the cost of suffering him to regale on the favourite viand of these animals, the brains of a stray goose or crested thraso of the dunghill. At all events, it is degrading to the majesty, and injurious to the character, of religion, to make its safety the plea for their punishment, or at all to connect the name of Christianity with the castigation of indecencies that properly belong to the beadle, and the perpetrators of which would have equally deserved his lash, though the religion of their fellow-citizens, thus as- sailed by them, had been that of Fo or of Juggernaut. On the other hand, we are to answer every one that inquires a reason, or an account; which sup- poses something receptive of it. We ought to judge ourselves engaged to give it, be it an enemy, if he will hear ; if it gain him not, it may in part convince and cool him ; much more, should it be one who ingenuously inquires for satisfaction, and possibly inclines to receive the truth, but has been prejudiced by misrepresentations of it. * " About the end of the same year (says Kalm), another of these animals (Mephitis Americana) crept into our cellar; but did not exhale the smallest scent, because it was not disturbed. A foolish old woman, however, who perceived it at night, by the shining, and thought, I suppose, that it would set the world on fire, hilled it : and at that moment its stench began to spread" I recommend this anecdote to the consideration of sundry old women, on this side of the Atlantic, who, though they do not wear the appropriate garment, are worthy to sit in their committee-room, like Bickerstaff in the Tatler, under the canopy of their grandam's hoop-petticoat. 90 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XLII. PASSION NO FRIEND TO TRUTH. LEIGETO.W Truth needs not the service of passion ; yea, nothing so disserves it, as passion when set to serve it. The Spirit of truth is withal the Spirit of meek- ness. The Dove that rested on that great champion of truth, who is The Truth itself, is from Him derived to the lovers of truth, and they ought to seek the participation of it. Imprudence makes some kind of Christians lose much of their labour in speaking for religion, and drive those further off, whom they would draw into it. The confidence that attends a Christian's belief makes the believer not fear men, to whom he answers, but still lie fears his God, for whom he answers, and whose interest is chief in those things he speaks of. The soul that hath the deepest sense of spiritual things, and the truest knowledge of God, is most afraid to miscarry in speaking of Him, most tender and wary how to acquit itself when engaged to speak of and for God.-:' * To the same purpose are the two following sentences from Hilary : — Etiam quo? pro religione dicimus, cum grandi metu et dis- ciplina dicer c debemits. — Hilarius de Trinit. Lib. 7. Non relictus est hominum eloquiis de Dei rebus alms quam Dei sermo. — lb. The latter, however, must be taken w 7 ith certain qualifi- cations and exceptions : as when any two or more texts are in apparent contradiction, and it is required to state a trutk that comprehends and reconciles both, and which, of course^ cannot be expressed in the words of either : — for example, the Filial subordination (My Father is greater titan 1), in thj equal Deity (My Father and 1 are one). NOEAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 91 APHORISM XLIII. OX THE CONSCIENCE. LEIGHTOiJ It is a fruitless verbal debate, whether Conscience be a faculty or a habit. When all is examined, con science will be found to be no other than the mind of a man, under the notion of a particular reference to himself and his own actions. I rather think that conscience is the ground and antecedent of human (or self-) consciousness, and not any modification of (he latter. I have selected the preceding extract as an exercise for reflection ; and because I think that in too closely following Thomas a Kempis, the Archbishop has strayed from his own judgment. The definition, for instance, seems to say all, and in fact says nothing ; for if I asked, How do you define the human mind? the answer must at least contain, if not consist of, the words, " a mind capable of conscience." For conscience is no syno- nyme of consciousness, nor any mere expression of the same as modified by the particular object. On the contrary, a consciousness properly human (that is, self-consciousness), with the sense of moral re- sponsibility, pre-supposes the conscience as its ante- cedent condition and ground. — Lastly, the sentence, "It is a fruitless verbal debate," — is an assertion of the same complexion with the contemptuous sneers at verbal criticism by the contemporaries of Bentley. In questions of philosophy or divinity that have occupied the learned and been the subjects of many successive controversies, for one instance of mere logomachy I could bring ten instances of logodsedaly, or verbal legerdemain which have perilously con • 92 AIDS TO REFLECTION. firmed prejudices, and withstood the advancement of truth, in consequence of the neglect of verbal debate, that is, strict discussion of terms. In whatever sense however, the term Conscience may be used, the fol- lowing Aphorism is equally true and important. It is worth noticing, likewise, that Leighton himself in a following page, tells us, that a good conscience is the root of a good conversation, and then quotes from St. Paul a text, Titus i. 15, in which the Mind and the Conscience are expressly distinguished. APHORISM XLIV. THE LIGHT OF KNOWLEDGE A NECESSARY ACCOMPANIMENT OF A GOOD CONSCIENCE. LEIGHTON. If you would have a good conscience, you must by all means have so much light, so much knowledge of the will of God, as may regulate you, and show you your way, may teach you how to do, and speak, and think, as in His presence. APHORISM XLV. YET THE KNOWLEDGE OF THE RULE, THOUGH ACCOMPANIED BY AN ENDEAVOUR TO ACCOMMODATE OUR CONDUCT TO THIS RULE, WILL NOT OF ITSELF FORM A GOOD CON- SCIENCE. LEIGHTON. To set the outward actions right, though with an honest intention, and not so to regard and find out the inward disorder of the heart, whence that in the actions flows, is but to be still putting the index of a clock right with your finger, while it is foul or out of order w T ithin, which is a continual business and does no good. Oh ! but a purified conscience, a soul renewed and refined in its temper and affections, will make things go right without, in all the duties and acts of our calling. MORAL AND RELIGTOCS APHORISMS. U3 APHORISM XLYI. THE DEPTH OF THE CONSCIENCE. How deeply seated the Conscience is in the human soul, is seen in the effect which sudden calamities produce on guilty men, even when unaided by any determinate notion or fears of punishment after death. The wretched criminal, as one rudely awa- kened from a long sleep, bewildered with the new light, and half recollecting, half striving to recollect, a fearful something, he knows not what, but which he will recognise as soon as he hears the name, already interprets the calamities into judgments, executions of a sentence passed by an invisible judge ; as if the vast pyre of the last judgment were already kindled in an unknown distance, and some flashes of it, darting forth at intervals beyond the rest, were flying and lighting upon the face of his soul. The calamity may consist in loss of fortune, or character, or reputation ; but you hear no regrets from him. Remorse extinguishes all regret; and remorse is the implicit creed of the guilty. APHORISM XLYII. LKIGHTOH AST) COLERIDGE. God hath suited every creature He bath made with a convenient good to which it tends, and in the obtainment of which it rests and is satisfied. Natural bodies have all their own natural place, whither, if not hindered, they move incessantly till they be in it; and thev declare, bv resting there, that thev are (as I may say) where they would be. Sensitive creatures are carried to seek a sensitive good, as agreeable to their rank in being, and, attaining that, aim no 01 AIDS TO REFLECTION. farther. Now in this is the excellency of man, that he is made capable of a communion with his Maker, and, because capable of it, is unsatisfied without it. : the soul, being cut out (so to speak) to that largeness, cannot be filled with less. Though he is fallen from his right to that good, and from all right desire of it, yet not from a capacity of it, no, nor from a necessity of it, for the answering and filling of his capacity. Though the heart once gone from God turns con- tinually further away from Him, and moves not towards Him till it be renewed, yet, even in that wandering, it retains that natural relation to God, as its centre, that it hath no true rest elsewhere, nor can by any means find it. It is made for Him, and is therefore still restless till it meet with Him. It is true, the natural man takes much pains to quiet his heart by other things, and digests many vexations with hopes of contentment in the end and accomplishment of some design he hath ; but still the heart misgives. Many times he attains not the thing he seeks; but if he do, yet he never attains the satisfaction he seeks and expects in it, but only learns from that to desire something further, and still hunts on after a fancy, drives his own shadow before him, and never overtakes it ; and if he did, yet it is but a shadow. And so, in running from God, besides the sad end, he carries an interwoven punish- ment with his sin, the natural disquiet and vexation of his spirit, fluttering to and fro, and finding no rest for the sole of his foot ; the waters of inconstancy and vanity covering the whole face of the earth. These tilings are too gross and heavy. The soul, the immortal soul, descended from heaven, must either be more happy or remain miserable. The highest, the uncreated Spirit, is the proper good, the Father of spirits, that pure and full Good which MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 05 raises the soul above itself ; whereas all other things draw it down below itself. So, then, it is never well with the soul, but when it is near unto God, yea, in its union with Him, married to Him : mis 7iiatching itself elsewhere it hath never anything but shame and sorrow. All that forsake Thee shall he ashamed, says the prophet, Jer. xvii. 13 ; and the Psalmist, They that are jar off from Thee shall perish. Psal. lxxiii. 27. And this is indeed our natural miserable condition, and it is often expressed this way, by estrangedness and distance from God. The same sentiments are to be found in the works of Pagan philosophers and moralists. Well then may they be made a subject of reflection in our days. And well may the pious Deist, if such a character now exists, reflect that Christianity alone both teaches the way, and provides the means, of fulfilling the obscure promises of this great instinct for all men, which the philosophy of boldest pretensions confined to the sacred few. APHORISM XLYIII. A CONTRACTED SPHERE, OR WHAT IS CALLED RETIRING FROM THE BUSINESS OF THE WORLD, NO SECURITY FROM THE SPIRIT OF THE WORLD. LEIGKTON. The heart may be engaged in a little business as much, if thou watch it not, as in many and great affairs. A man may drown in a little brook or pool, as well as in a great river, if he be down and plunge himself into it, and put his head under water. Some care thou must have, that thou mayst not care. Those things that are thorns indeed, thou must make a hedge of them, to keep out those temptations that accompany sloth, and extreme want that waits on it ; but let them be the hedge : suffer them not to grow within the garden. AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XLIX. ON CHURCH-GOING, AS A PART OF RELIGIOUS MORALITY, WHEN NOT IN REFERENCE TO A SPIRITUAL RELIGION. It is a strange folly in multitudes of us, to set our- selves no mark, to propound no end in the hearing of the Gospel. The merchant sails not merely that he may sail, but for traffic, and traffics that he may be rich. The husbandman plows not merely to keep himself busy, with no further end, but plows that he may sow, and sows that he may reap with advantage. And shall we do the most excellent and fruitful work fruitlessly — hear, only to hear, and look no further ? This is indeed a great vanity and a great misery, to lose that labour, and gain nothing by it, which, duly used, w r ould be of all others most advan- tageous and gainful ; and yet all meetings are full of this! APHORISM L. ON THE HOPES AND SELF-SATISFACTION OF A RELIGIOUS MORALIST, INDEPENDENT OF A SPIRITUAL FAITH— ON WHAT ARE THEY GROUNDED? LEIGHTO.W There have been great disputes one way or another, about the merit of good works ; but I truly think they who have laboriously engaged in them have been very idly, though very eagerly, employed about nothing, since the more sober of the Schoolmen themselves acknowledge there can be no such thing as meriting from the blessed God, in the human, or, to speak more accurately, in any created nature what- soever; nay, so far from any possibility of merit, there can be no room for reward any otherwise than of the sovereign pleasure and gracious kindness of God ; and the more ancient writers, when they use MORAL AND RELIGIOUS APHORISMS. 97 die word merit, mean nothing b) T it but a certain correlate to that reward which God both promises and bestows of mere grace and benignity. Other- wise, in order to constitute what is properly called merit, many things must concur, which no man in his senses will presume to attribute to human works, though ever so excellent ; particularly, that the tiling done must not previously be matter of debt, and that it be entire, or our own act, unassisted by foreign aid ; it must also be perfectly good, and it must bear an adequate proportion to the reward claimed in con sequence of it. If ail these things do not concur, the act cannot possibly amount to merit. Whereas I think no one will venture to assert, that any one of these can take place in any human action whatever. But why should I enlarge here, when one single cir- cumstance overthrows all those titles? The most righteous of mankind would not be able to stand, if his works were weighed in the balance of strict justice ; how much less then could they deserve that immense glory which is now in question ! Nor is this to be denied only concerning the unbeliever and the sinner, but concerning the righteous and pious believer, who is not only free from all the guilt of his former impenitence and rebellion, but endowed with the gift of the Spirit. For the time is come that judgment tnust begin at the house of God: and if it first begin at as, ichat shall the end be of them that obey not the Gospel of God ? And if the righteous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear? 1 Peter iv. 17, 18. The Apostle's interrogation expresses the most vehement negation, and signifies that no mortal, in whatever degree he is placed, if he be called to the strict examination of divine justice, without daily and repeated forgiveness, could be able to keep his standing, and much less could he 98 ArT)^ TO REFLECTION. arise to that glorious height. " That merit," say a Bernard, " on which my hope relies, consists in these three things ; the love of adoption, the truth of the promise, and the power of its performance." This is the threefold cord which cannot be broken. COMilENT. Often have I heard it said by advocates for the Socinian scheme — True ! we are all sinners ; but even in the Old Testament God has promised for- giveness on repentance. One of the Fathers (I forget which) supplies the retort — True! God has promised pardon on penitence ; but has he promised penitence on sin ? — He that repenteth shall be for- given ; but where is it said, He that sinneth shall repent? But repentance, perhaps, the repentance required in Scripture, the passing into a new and contrary principle of action, this metanoia, is in the sinners own power? at his own liking? He has but to open his eyes to the sin, and the tears are close at hand to wash it away ? — Verily, the tenet of T ran substantiation is scarcely at greater variance with the common sense and experience of mankind, or borders more closely on a contradiction in terms than this volunteer transmentation, this self-change, as the easy means of self-salvation ! But the reflections of our evangelical Author on this subject will appro- priately commence the Aphorisms relating to Spiritual Religion. G9 ELEMENTS OF EELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY, PRELIMINARY TO THE APHORISMS ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. Philip saith unto him : Lord, show us the Father, and it sufficeth us. Jesus saith unto him, He that hath seen me hath seen the Father : and how sayest thou then, Show us the Father? Believest thou not that I am in the Father and the Father in me 1 And I will pray the Father and he shall give you another Comforter, even the Spirit of Truth : whom the worid cannot receive, because it seeth him not, neither knoweth him. But ye know him, for he dwelleth with you and shall be in you. And in that day ye shall know that I am in my Father, and ye in me, and I in you. — John, xiv. 8, 9, 10, 16, 17, 20. PRELIMINARY. If there be aught spiritual in man, the Will must be such. If there be a Will, there must be a spirituality in man. I suppose both positions granted. The Reader admits the reality of the power, agency, or mode of being expressed in the term, Spirit ; and the actual existence of a Will. He sees clearly, that the idea of the former is necessary to the conceivability of the latter ; and that, vice versa, in asserting the fact of the latter he presumes and instances the truth of the former ; — just as in our common and received sys- tems of natural philosophy, the being of imponderable matter is assumed to render the lode-stone intelli- h2 100 AIDS TO REFLECTION. gible, and the fact of the lode-stone adduced to prove the reality of imponderable matter. In short, I suppose the Reader, whom I now invite to the third and last division of this Work, already disposed to reject for himself and his human brethren the insidious title of " Natures noblest animal," or to 'retort it as the unconscious irony of the Epicurean poet on the animalising tendency of his own philo- sophy. I suppose him convinced, that there is more in man than can be rationally referred to the life of nature and the mechanism of organisation ; that he has a will not included in this mechanism ; and that the will is in an especial and pre-eminent sense the spiritual part of our humanity. Unless, then, we have some distinct notion of the Will, and some acquaintance with the prevalent errors respecting the same, an insight into the nature of spiritual religion is scarcely possible ; and our reflections on the particular truths and evidences of a spiritual state will remain obscure, perplexed, and un safe. To place my Reader on this requisite vantage ground, is the purpose of the following exposition. We have begun, as in geometry, with defining our terms; and we proceed, like the geometricians, with stating our postulates ; the difference being, that the postulates of geometry no man can deny, those of moral science are such as no good man will deny. For it is not in our power to disclaim our nature as sentient beings ; but it is in our power to disclaim our nature as moral beings. It is possible — (barely possible, I admit) — that a man may have remained ignorant or unconscious of the moral law r within him : and a man need only persist in disobeying the law of conscience to make it possible for himself to deny its existence, or to reject and repel It as a phantom of superstition. Were it otherwise, the Creed would ELEMENTS OF RELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY. 101 stand in the same relation to morality as the multi- plication table. This then is the distinction of moral philosophy — not that I begin with one or more assumptions ; for this is common to all science ; but — that I assume a something, the proof of which no man can give to another, yet every man may find for himself. If any man assert that he cannot find it, I am bound to disbelieve him. I cannot do otherwise without un- settling the very foundations of my own moral nature. .For I either find it as an essential of the humanity common to him and me : or I have not found it at all, except as a hypochondriast finds glass legs. If, on the other hand, he will not find it, he excommu- nicates himself. He forfeits his personal rights, and becomes a thing : that is, one who may rightfully be employed, or used, as* means to an end, against his will, and without regard to his interest. All the significant objections of the Materialist and Necessitarian are contained in the term, Morality ; all the objections of the Infidel, in the term, Religion. The very terms, I say, imply a something granted, which the objection supposes not granted. The term presumes what the objection 1 denies, and in denying * On this principle alone is it possible to justify capital or ignominious punishment?, or indeed any punishment not having the reformation of the criminal as one of its objects. Such punishments, like those inflicted on suicides, must be regarded as posthumous : the wilful extinction of the moral and personal life being, for the purposes of punitive justice, equivalent to a wilful destruction of the natural life. If the speech of Judge Burnet to the horse-stealer, — (You are not hanged for stealing a horse ; but, that horses may not be stolen) — can be vindicated at all, it must be on this prin- ciple ; and not on the all-unsettling scheme of expedience, which is the anarchy of morals. 102 AIDS TO REFLECTION. presumes the contrary. For it is most important to observe that the reasoners on both sides commence by taking something for granted, our assent to which they ask or demand : that is, both set off with an assumption in the form of a postulate. But the Epicurean assumes what according to himself he neither is nor can be under any obligation to assume, and demands what he can have no right to demand: for he denies the reality of all moral obligation, the existence of any right. If he use the words, right and obligation, he does it deceptively, and means only power and compulsion. To overthrow the faith in aught higher or other than nature ' and physical necessity, is the very purpose of his argument. He desires you only to take for granted, that all reality is included in nature, and he may then safely defy you to ward off his conclusion — that nothing is excluded ! But as he cannot morally demand, neither can he rationally expect, your assent to this premiss: for he cannot be ignorant, that the best and greatest of men have devoted their lives to the enforcement of the contrary ; that the vast majority of the human race in all ages and in all nations have believed in the contrary ; and that there is not a language on earth, in which he could argue, f,»r ten minutes, in support of his scheme, without sliding into words and phrases that imply the contrary. It has been said, that the Arabic has a thousand names for a lion ; but this would be a trifle compared with the number of superfluous words and useless synonymes that would be found in an index expurgatorins of any European dictionary constructed on the principles of a consistent and strictly consequential Materialism. The Christian, likewise grounds his philosophy on assertions; but with the best of all reasons for ELEMENTS OF RELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY. 103 making them — namely, that he ought so to do. He asserts what he can neither prove, nor account for, nor himself comprehend ; but with the strongest inducements, that of understanding thereby whatever else it most concerns him to understand aright. And yet his assertions have nothing in them of theory or hypothesis : but are in immediate reference to three ultimate facts ; namely, the reality of the law of conscience ; the existence of a responsible will, as the subject of that law ; and lastly, the existence of evil — of evil essentially such, not by accident of outward circumstances, not derived from its physical consequences, nor from any cause out of itself. The first is a fact of consciousness ; the second a fact of reason necessarily concluded from the first ; and the third a fact of history interpreted by both. Omnia exeunt in mysterium, says a schoolman; that is, There is nothing, the absolute ground of which is not a mystery. The contrary were indeed a contradiction in terms : for how can that, which is to explain all things, be susceptible of an explana- tion ? It would be to suppose the same thing first and second at the same time. If I rested here, I should merely have placed my creed in direct opposition to that of the Necessita- nans, who assume — (for observe, both parties begin in an assumption and cannot do otherwise) — that motives act on the will, as bodies act on bodies ; and that whether mind and matter are essentially the same, or essentially different, they are both alike under one and the same law of compulsory causation But this is far from exhausting my intention. I mean at the same time to oppose the disciples of Shaftesbury and those who, substituting one faith for another, have been well called the pious Deists of the last century, in order to distinguish them from 101 AIDS TO REFLECTION. the infidels of the present age, who persuade them- selves, — (for the thing itself is not possible) — that they reject all faith. I declare my dissent from these two, because they imposed upon themselves an idea for a fact: a most sublime idea indeed, and so necessary to human nature, that without it no virtue is conceivable ; but still an idea. In contradiction to their splendid but delusory tenets, I profess a deep conviction that man was and is a fallen creature, not by accidents of bodily constitution or any other cause, which human wisdom in a course of ages might be supposed capable of removing ; but as diseased in his will, in that will which is the true and only strict synonym e of the word, I, or the intelligent Self. Thus at each of these two oppo- site roads (the philosophy of Hobbes and that of Shaftesbury), I have placed a directing post, informing my fellow-travellers, that on neither of these roads can they see the truths to which I would direct their attention. But the place of starting was at the meeting of four roads, and one only was the right road. I proceed therefore to preclude the opinion of those likewise, who indeed agree with me as to the moral responsibility of man in opposition to Hobbes and the anti-moralists, and that he is a fallen creature, essentially diseased, in opposition to Shaftesbury and the mis-interpreters of Plato ; but who differ from me in exaggerating the diseased weakness of the will into an absolute privation of all freedom, thereby making moral responsibility not a mystery above comprehension, but a direct contradiction, of which we do distinctly comprehend the absurdity. Among the consequences of this doctrine, is that direful one of swallowing up all the attributes of the Supreme Being in the one attribute of infinite power, and ELEMENTS OF HELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY. 105 thence deducing that things are good and -wise because they were created, and not created through wisdom and goodness. Thence too the awful attri- bute of justice is explained away into a mere right of absolute property ; the sacred distinction between things and persons is erased ; and the selection of persons for virtue and vice in this life, and for eternal happiness or misery in the next, is repre- sented as the result of a mere will, acting in the blindness and solitude of its own infinity. The title of a work written by the great and pious Boyle is, *' Of the awe which the human mind owes to the Supreme Reason." This, in the language of these gloomy doctors, must be translated into — " The horror, which a being capable of eternal pleasure or pain is compelled to feel at the idea of an Infinite Power, about to inflict the latter on an immense majority of human souls, without any power on their part either to prevent it or the actions which are (not indeed its causes but) its assigned signals, and pre- ceding links of the same iron chain ! " Against these tenets I maintain, that a will con- ceived separately from intelligence is a nonentity, and a mere phantasm of abstraction ; and that a will, the state of which does in no sense originate in its own act, is an absolute contradiction. It might b8 an instinct, an impulse, a plastic power, and, if ac- companied with consciousness, a desire ; but a will it could not be. And this every human being knows with equal clearness, though different minds may reflect on it with different degrees of distinctness ; for who would not smile at the notion of a rose willing to put forth its buds and expand them into flowers? That such a phrase would be deemed a poetic license proves the difference in the things : for all metaphors are grounded on an apparent 100 AIDS TO JREFLECTION. likeness of tilings essentially different. I utterly disclaim the notion, that any human intelligence, with whatever power it might manifest itself, is alone adequate to the office of restoring health to the will : but at the same time I deem it impious and absurd to hold that the Creator would have given us the faculty of reason, or that the Redeemer would in so many varied forms of argument and persuasion have appealed to it, if it had been either totally useless or wholly impotent. Lastly, I find all these several truths reconciled and united in the belief, that the imperfect human understanding can be effectually exerted only in subordination to, and in a dependent alliance with, the means and aidances supplied by the All-perfect and Supreme Eeason; but that under these conditions it is not only an ad- missible, but a necessary, instrument of bettering both ourselves and others. We may now proceed to our reflections on the Spirit of Religion. The first three or four Aphorisms I have selected from the theological works of Dr. Henry More, a contemporary of Archbishop Leighton, and, like him, held in suspicion by the Calvinists of that time as a Latitudinarian and Platonising divine, and who probably, like him, would have been arraigned as a Calvinist by the Latitudinarians (I cannot say, Platonists) of this day, had the suspicion been equally groundless. One or two I have ventured to add from my own reflections. The purpose, how- ever, is the same in all — that of declaring, in the first place, what spiritual religion is not, what is not a religious spirit, and what are not to be deemed influences of the Spirit. If after these disclaimers 1' shall without proof be charged by any with renewing or favouring the errors of the Familists, Vanists, Seekers, Behmenists, or by whatever other names ELEMENTS OF RELIGIOUS PHILOSOPHY. 107 Church history records the poor bewildered enthu- siasts, who in the swarming time of our Republic, turned the facts of the Gospel into allegories, and superseded the "written ordinances of Christ by a pretended teaching and sensible presence of the Spirit, I appeal against them to their own con- sciences as wilful slanderers. But if with proof, I have in these Aphorisms signed and sealed my own condemnation. " These things I could not forbear to write. For the light within me, that is, my reason and con- science, does assure me, that the ancient and Apos- tolic faith, according to the historical meaning thereof, and in the literal sense of the Creed, is solid and true : and that Familism * in its fairest form and under whatever disguise, is a smooth tale to seduce the simple from their allegiance to Christ." Henrt MoRE.f * The Family of Love, a sect founded by Henry Nicholas in Holland in 1555. — Ed. f Mysfc. of Godliness, vi. — FcL 108 APHOEISMS ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. A.nd here it will not be impertinent to observe, that what the eldest Greek philosophy entitled the Reason (NOT2) and ideas, the philosophic Apostle names the Spirit and truths spiritually discerned : while to those who, in the pride of learning or in the overweening meanness of modern metaphysics, decry the doctrine of the Spirit in man and its possible communion with the Holy Spirit as vulgar enthusiasm, I submit the following sentences from a Pagan philosopher, a nobleman and a minister of state — "Ita dico, Lucili, sacer intra nos Spiritus sedet, malorum honor umque nostrorum observator el custos. Ilic prout a nobis tractatus est, ita nos ipse tractat. Bonus vir sine Deo nemo est." — Seneca, Epist. xli. APHORISM I. Every one is to give a reason of his faith; but priests and ministers more punctually than any, their province being to make good every sentence of the Bible to a rational inquirer into the truth of these oracles. Enthusiasts find it an easy thing to heat the fancies of unlearned and unreflecting hearers ; but when a sober man would be satisfied of the grounds from whence they speak, he shall not have one syllable or the least tittle of a pertinent answer. Only they will talk big of the Spirit, and inveigh against reason with bitter reproaches, calling it carnal or fleshly, though it be indeed no soft flesh, but enduring and penetrant steel, even the sword of the Spirit, and such as pierces to the heart. ON SPIRITUAL HELIGION. 109 APHORISM II. H. MOftE. There are two very bad things in this resolving of men's faith and practice into the immediate sugges- tion of a Spirit not acting on our understandings, or rather into the illumination of such a Spirit as they can give no account of, such as does not enlighten their reason or enable them to render their doc- trine intelligible to others. First, it defaces and makes useless that part of the image of God in us, which we call reason : and, secondly, it takes away that advantage, which raises Christianity above all other religions, that she dares appeal to so solid a faculty. APHORISM III. It is the glory of the Gospel charter and the Christian constitution, that its author and head is the Spirit of truth, essential Eeason as well as absolute and incomprehensible Will. Like a just monarch, he refers even his own causes to the judgment of his high courts. — He has his King's Bench in the reason, his Court of Equity in the conscience ; that the representative of his majesty and universal justice, this the nearest to the king's heart, and the dispenser of his particular decrees. He has likewise his Court of Common Pleas in the understanding, his Court of Exchequer in the pru dence. The laws are his laws. And though by signs and miracles he has mercifully condescended to interline here and there with his own hand the great statute-book, which he had dictated to his a?nanuensis, Nature ; yet has he been graciously pleased to forbid our receiving as the king's man- dates aught that is not stamped with the Great Seal of the Conscience, and countersigned by the Reason ]]0 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM IV. LS AN UNLEARNED MINISTRY, UNDER PRETENCE OF A CALL OF THE SPIRIT, AND INWARD GRACES SUPERSEDING OUT- WARD HELPS. H. MORE. Tell me, ye high-flown perfectionists, ye boasters of the light within you, could the highest perfection of your inward light ever show to you the history of past ages, the state of the world at present, the know- ledge of arts and tongues, without books or teachers ? How then can you understand the providence of God, or the age, the purpose, the fulfilment of prophecies, or distinguish such as have been fulfilled from those to the fulfilment of which we are to look forward ? How can you judge concerning the authenticity and uncorruptedness of the Gospels, and the other sacred Scriptures ? And how, without this knowledge, can you support the truth of Christianity ? How can you either have, or give a reason for, the faith which you profess? This light within, that loves dark- ness, and would exclude those excellent gifts of God to mankind, knowledge and understanding, what is it but a sullen self-sufficiency within you, engendering contempt of superiors, pride and a spirit of division, and inducing you to reject for yourselves, and to un- dervalue in others, the helps without, which the grace of God has provided and appointed for his Church — nay, to make them grounds or pretexts of your dislike or suspicion of Christ's ministers who have fruitfully availed themselves of the helps afforded them ? APHORISM V. H. MOUE. There are wanderers, whom neither pride nor a perverse humour have led astray ; and whose condi- tion is such, that I think few more worthy of a ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. Ill man's best directions. For the more imperious sects having put such unhandsome vizards on Christianity, and the sincere milk of the word having been every- where so sophisticated by the humours and inventions of men, it has driven these anxious melancholists to seek for a teacher that cannot deceive, the voice of the eternal Word within them ; to which if they.be faithful, they assure themselves it will be faithful to them in return. Nor would this be a groundless presumption, if they had sought this voice in the reason and the conscience, with the Scripture articulating the same, instead of giving heed to their fancy and mistaking bodily disturbances, and the vapours resulting therefrom, for inspiration and the teaching of the Spirit. APHORISM VI. HACKET. When every man is hi3 own end, all things will come to a bad end. Blessed were those days, when every man thought himself rich and fortunate by the good success of the public wealth and glory. We want public souls, we want them. I speak it with compassion : there is no sin and abuse in the world that affects my thoughts so much. Every man thinks, that he is a whole commonwealth in his private family. Omnes qua sua sunt qucBrunt. All geek then- own. Selfishness is common to all ages and countries. In all ages self-seeking is the rule, and self-sacrifice the exception. But if to seek our private advantage in harmony with, and by the furtherance of, the public prosperity, and to derive a portion of our happiness from sympathy with the prosperity of our US AIDS TO KE FLECTION. fellow-men — if this be public spirit, it would be morose and querulous to pretend that there is any want of it in this country and at the present time. On the contrary, the number of " public souls" and the general readiness to contribute to the public good, in science and in religion, in patriotism and in nhilanthropy, stand prominent * among the charac- teristics of this and the preceding generation. The habit of referring actions and opinions to fixed laws ; convictions rooted in principles; thought, insight, system ; — these, had the good Bishop lived in our times, would have been his desiderata, and the theme of his complaints. " We want thinking souls, we want them." This and the three preceding extracts will suffice as precautionary Aphorisms. And here, again, the Eeader may exemplify the great advantages to be * The very marked, positive as well as comparative, mag- nitude and prominence of the bump, entitled benevolence (see Spurzhoim's map of the human skull) on the head of the late Mr. John Thurtel, has woefully unsettled the faith of many ardent phrenologists, and strengthened the previous doubts of a still greater number into utter disbelief. On my mind this fact (for a fact it is) produced the directly contrary effect ; and inclined me to suspect, for the first time, that there may be some truth in the Spurzheimian scheme. Whether future craniologists may not see cause to new-name this and one or two other of these convex gnomons, is quite a different question. At present, and according to the present use of words, any such change would be premature : and we must be content to say, that Mr. Thurtel's benevolence was insufficiently modified by the unprotrusive and unindicated convolutes of the brain, that secrete honesty and common- sense. The organ of destructiveness was indirectly poten- tiated by the absence or imperfect development of the glands of reason and conscience, in this "unfortunate gentleman ! " ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 113 obtained from the habit of tracing the proper meaning and history of words. We need only recollect the common and idiomatic phrases in which the word " spirit " occurs in a physical or material sense (as, fruit has lost its spirit and flavour), to be convinced that its property is to improve, enliven, actuate some other thing, not constitute a thing in its own name. The enthusiast may find one exception to this where the material itself is called spirit. And when he calls to mind, how this spirit acts when taken alone by the unhappy persons who in their first exultation will boast that it is meat, drink, fire, and clothing to them, all in one — when he reflects, that its properties are to inflame, intoxicate, madden, with exhaustion, lethargy, and atrophy for the sequels ; — well for him, if in some lucid interval he should fairly put the question to his own mind, how far this is analogous to his own case, and whether the exception does not confirm the rule. The letter without the spirit killeth ; but does it follow, that the spirit is to kill the letter ? To kill that which it is its appropriate office to enliven ? Howe f'er, where the ministry is not invaded, and the plain sense of the Scriptures is left undisturbed, and the believer looks for the suggestions of the Spirit only or chiefly in applying particular passages to his own individual case and exigencies ; though in this there may be much weakness, some delusion and imminent danger of more, I cannot but join with Henry More in avowing, that I feel knit to such a man in the bonds of a common faith far more closelv than to those who receive neither the letter nor the Spirit, turning the one into metaphor and oriental hyperbole, in order to explain away the other into the influence of motives suggested by their own un- derstandings, and realised by their own strength. 114 APHOEISMS ON THAT WHICH IS INDEED SPIRITUAL RELIGION. In the selection of the extracts that form the remainder of this volume, and of the comments affixed, I had the following objects principally in view: — first, to exhibit the true and Scriptural meaning and intent of several articles of faith, that are rightly classed among the mysteries and peculiar doctrines of Christianity : — secondly, to show the perfect rationality of these doctrines, and their freedom from all just objection when examined by their proper organ, the reason and conscience of man : — lastly, to exhibit from the works of Leighton, who perhaps of all our learned Protestant theologians best deserves the title of a spiritual divine, an in- structive and affecting picture of the contemplations, reflections, conflicts, consolations, and monitory expe- riences of a philosophic and richly-gifted mind, amply stored with all the knowledge that books and long intercourse with men of the most discordant characters could give, under the convictions, impressions, and habits of a spiritual religion. To obviate a possible disappointment in any of my Readers, who may chance to be engaged in theolo- gical studies, it may be well to notice, that in vindi- cating the peculiar tenets of our Faith, I have not entered on the doctrine of the Trinity, or the still pro founder mystery of the origin of moral Evil — and this for the reasons following. ]. These doctrines are not, in strictness, subjects of reflection, in the ON SPIRITUAL KELIGION. 115 proper sense of this word : and both of them demand a power and persistency of abstraction, and a pre- vious discipline in the highest forms of human thought, which it would be unwise, if not presump- tuous, to expect from any, who require aids to reflec- tion, or would be likely to seek them in the present Work. 2. In my intercourse with men of various ranks and ages, I have found the far larger number of serious and inquiring persons little, if at all, dis- quieted by doubts respecting articles of faith simply above their comprehension. It is only where the belief required of them jars with their moral feelings : where a doctrine, in the sense in which they have been taught to receive it, appears to contradict their clear notions of right and wrong, or to be at variance with the divine attributes of goodness and justice, that these men are surprised, perplexed, and alas ! not seldom offended and alienated. Such are the doctrines of arbitrary election and reprobation ; the sentence to everlasting torment by an eternal and necessitating decree : vicarious atonement, and the necessity of the abasement, agony and ignominious death of a most holy and meritorious person, to appease the wrath of God. Now it is more especially for such persons, unwilling sceptics, who, believing ear nestly, ask help for their unbelief, that this Volume was compiled, and the Comments written : and there- fore, to the Scripture doctrines intended by the above-mentioned, my principal attention has been directed. APHORISM I. LEIGHTON. Where, if not in Christ, is the power that can persuade a sinner to return, that can bring home a heart to God ? i 2 116 AIDS TO EEFLECTJON. Common mercies of God, though they have a leading faculty to repentance (Rom. ii. 4), yet the rebellious heart will not be led by them. The judg- ments of God, public or personal, though they ought to drive us to God, yet the heart, unchanged, runs the further from God. Do we not see it by ourselves and other sinners about us ? They look not at all towards Him who smites, much, less do they return , or if any more serious thoughts of returning arise upon the surprise of an affliction, how soon vanish they, either the stroke abating, or the heart, by time, growing hard and senseless under it ! Leave Christ out, I say, and all other means work not this way ; neither the works nor the word of God sounding daily in his ear, Return, return. Let the noise of the rod speak it too, and both join together to make the cry the louder, yet the wicked will do wickedly. (Dan xi. 10.) By the phrase "in Christ," I understand all the supernatural aids vouchsafed and conditionally pro- mised in the Christian dispensation : and among them the spirit of truth, which the world cannot receive, were it only that the knowledge of spiritual truth is of necessity immediate and intuitive ; and the world or natural man possesses no higher intuitions than those of the pure sense, which are the subjects of mathematical science. But aids, observe : — there- fore, not by the will of man alone ; but neither without the will. The doctrine of modern Calvinism, as laid down by Jonathan Edwards, and the late Dr. Williams, which represents a will absolutely passive, clay in the hands of a potter, destroys all will, takes away its essence and definition, as effec- tually as in saying — This circle is square — I should ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 317 deny the figure to be a circle at all. It was in strict consistency, therefore, that these writers supported the Necessitarian scheme, and made the relation of cause and effect the law of the universe, subjecting to its mechanism the moral world no less than the material or physical. It follows that all is nature . Thus, though few writers use the term Spirit more frequently, they in effect deny its existence, and evacuate the term of all its proper meaning. With such a system not the wit of man nor all the theodi- cies ever framed by human ingenuity, before and since the attempt of the celebrated Leibnitz, can reconcile the sense of responsibility, nor the fact of the difference in kind between regret and remorse. The same com- pulsion of consequence drove the fathers of modern (or pseudo) Calvinism to the origination of holiness in power, of justice in right of property, and what- ever other outrages on the common sense and moral feelings of mankind they have sought to cover under the fair name of Sovereign Grace. I will not take on me to defend sundry harsh and inconvenient expressions in the works of Calvin. Phrases equally strong, and assertions not less rash and startling, are no rarities in the writings of Luther : for catachresis was the favourite figure of speech in that age. But let not the opinions of either on this most fundamental subject be confounded with the New-England system, now entitled Calvinistic. The fact is simply this. Luther considered the preten- sions to free-will boastful, and better suited to the 44 budge doctors of the Stoic Fur," than to the preachers of the Gospel, whose great theme is the redemption of the will from slavery ; the restoration of the will to perfect freedom being the end and con- summation of the redemptive process, and the same with the entrance of the soul into glory, that is, its 118 AIDS TU INFLECTION. union with Christ; " glory " (John xvii. 5) being one of the names or tokens or symbols of the spiritual Messiah. Prospectively to this we are to understand the words of our Lord, At that clay ye shall know that I am in my Father, and ye in me, (John xiv. 20 :) the freedom of a finite will being possible under this con- dition only, that it has become one with the will oi God. Now as the difference of a captive and enslaved will, and no will at all, such is the difference between the Lutheranism of Calvin and the Calvinism of Jonathan Edwards. APHORISM II. LEIGHTOM. There is nothing in religion farther out of nature's reach, and more remote from the natural man's liking and believing, than the doctrine of redemption by a Saviour, and by a crucified Saviour. It is compara- tively easy to persuade men of the necessity of an amendment of conduct ; it is more difficult to make them see the necessity of repentance in the Gospel sense, the necessity of a change in the principle of action ; but to convince men of the necessity of the death of Christ is the most difficult of all. And yet the first is but varnish and whitewash without the second ; and the second but a barren notion without the last. Alas ! of those who admit the doctrine in words, how large a number evade it in fact, and empty it of all its substance and efficacy, making the effect the efficient cause, or attributing their election to salvation to supposed foresight of their faith and obedience. But it is most vain to imagine a faith in such and such men, which, being foreseen by God, determined him to elect them for salvation : were it only that nothing at all is future, or can have this ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 119 imagined futurition, but as it is decreed, and because it is decreed, by God so to be. No impartial person, competently acquainted with the history of the Keformation, and the works of the earlier Protestant divines at home and abroad, even to the close of Elizabeth's reign, will deny that the doctrines of Calvin on redemption and the natural state of fallen man, are in all essential points the same as those of Luther, Zuinglius, and the first Reformers collectively. These doctrines have, how- ever, since the re-establishment of the Episcopal Church at the return of Charles II., been as gene- rally* exchanged for what is commonly entitled * At a period in which Bishop Marsh and Dr. Wordsworth have, by the zealous on one side, been charged with Popish principles on account of their anti-bibliolatry, and, on the other, the sturdy adherents of the doctrines common to Luther and Calvin, and the literal interpreters of the Articles and Homilies, are — (I wish I could say, altogether without any fault of their own) — regarded by the Clergy generally as virtual schismatics, dividers of, though not from, the Church, — it is serving the cause of charity to assist in circulating the following instructive passage from the Life of Bishop Hacket, respecting the disputes between the Augustinians, or Luthero-Calvinistic divines, and the Grotians of his age : in which controversy (says his biographer) he, Hacket, "was ever very moderate." "But having been bred under Bishop Davenant and Dr. Ward in Cambridge, he was addicted to their sentiments. Archbishop Ussher would say, that Davenant understood those controversies better than ever any man did since St. Augustine. But he (Bishop Hacket) used to say, that he was sure he had three excellent men of his opinion in this controversy ; 1. Padre Paolo (Father Paul) whose letter is extant in Heinsius, anno 1604. 2. Thomas Aquinas. 3. St. Augustine. But besides and above them all, he believed in 120 AIDfl TO REFLECTION. Arminianism, but which, taken as a complete and explicit scheme of belief, it would be both histo- rically and theologically more accurate to call Gro tianism, or Christianity according to Grotius. The change was not, we may readily believe, effected without a struggle. In the Romish Church this latitudinarian system, patronised by the Jesuits, was manfully resisted by Jansenius, Arnauld, and Pascal; in our own Church by the Bishops Davenant, Sanderson, Hall, and the Archbishops Ussher and Leighton : and in the latter half of the preceding Aphorism the Reader has a specimen of the reason- ings by which Leighton strove to invalidate or coun- terpoise the reasonings of the innovators. Passages of this sort are, however, of rare occur- rence in Leighton 's works. Happily for thousands, he was more usefully employed in making his readers feel that the doctrines in question, Scripturally treated and taken as co-organised parts of a great organic whole, need no such reasonings. And better still would it have been, had he left them altogether for his conscience that St. Paul was of the same mind likewise. Yet at the same time he would profess that he disliked no Arminians but such as revile and defame every one who is not so ; and he would often commend Arminius himself for his excellent wit and parts, but only tax his want of reading and knowledge in antiquity. And he ever held, it was the foolishest thing in the world to say the Arminians were Popishly inclined, when so many Dominicans and Jansenists were rigid followers of Augustine in these points : and no less foolish to say that the Ant i- Arminians were Puritans and Presbyterians, when Ward, and Davenant, and Prideaux, and Browning, those stout champions for Episcopacy, were decided An ti- Arminians : while Arminius himself was ever a Presbyterian. Therefore he greatly commended the mo- deration of our Church, which extended equal communion to both " ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 121 those, who, severally detaching the great features of Revelation from the living context of Scripture, do by that very act destroy their life and purpose. And then, like the eyes of the Indian spider,* they become clouded microscopes, to exaggerate and dis- tort all the other parts and proportions. No offence then will be occasioned, I trust, by the frank avowal that I have given to the preceding passage a place among the spiritual Aphorisms for the sake of com- ment : the following remarks having been the first marginal note I had pencilled on Leighton's pages, and thus (remotely, at least), the occasion of the present Work. Leighton, I observed, throughout his inestimable Work, avoids all metaphysical views of Election, relatively to God, and confines himself to the doc- trine in its relation to man ; and in that sense too, in which every Christian may judge of it who strives to be sincere with his own heart. The following may, I think, be taken as a safe and useful rule in religious inquiries. Ideas, that derive their origin and substance from the moral being, and to the re- ception of which as true objectively (that is, as corre- sponding to a reality out of the human mind) we are determined by a practical interest exclusively, may not, like theoretical positions, be pressed onward into all their logical consequences. f The law of * Aranea prodigiosa. See Baker's Microscopic Expe- riments. f Perhaps this rule may be expressed more intelligibly (to a mathematician at least) thus : — Reasoning from finite to finite on a basis of truth; also, reasoning from infinite to infinite on a basis of truth, — will always lead to truth as intelli- gibly as the basis on which such truths respectively rest. "While reasoning from finite to infinite, or from infinite to finite, will lead to apparent absurdity, although the basis be true : and 122 AIDS TO REFLECTION. conscience, and not the canons of discursive reasoning, must decide in such cases. At least, the latter have no validity, which the single veto of the former is not sufficient to nullify. The most pious conclusion is here the most legitimate. It is too seldom considered, though most worthy of consideration, how far even those ideas or theories of pure speculation, that bear the same name with the objects of religious faith, are indeed the same. Out of the principles necessarily presumed in all discur- sive thinking, and which being, in the first place, universal, and secondly, antecedent to every parti cular exercise of the understanding, are therefore referred to the reason, the human mind (wherever its powers are sufficiently developed, and its attention strongly directed to speculative or theoretical inqui- ries) forms certain essences, to which for its own purposes it gives a sort of notional subsistence. Hence they are called entia rationalia : the conversion of which into entia realia, or real objects, by aid of the imagination, has in all times been the fruitful stock of empty theories and mischievous superstitions, of surreptitious premisses and extravagant conclusions. For as these substantiated notions were in many instances expressed by the same terms as the objects of religious faith; as in most instances they were applied, though deceptively, to the explanation of real experiences ; and lastly, from the gratifications which the pride and ambition of man received from the supposed extension of his knowledge and insight; it was too easily forgotten or overlooked, that the stablest and most indispensable of those notional beings were but the necessary forms of thinking, takenabstractedly : and that like the breadthless lines, is not such, apparent absurdity another expression for " truth unintelligible by a finite mind ?" ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 123 depthless surfaces, and perfect circles of geometry, they subsist wholly and solely in and for the mind that contemplates them. Where the evidence of the senses fails us, and beyond the precincts of sensible experience, there is no reality attributable to any notion, but what is given to it by Revelation, or the law of conscience, or the necessary interests of morality. Take an instance : It is the office, and as it were, the instinct of reason, to bring a unity into all our conceptions and several knowledges. On this all system depends; and without this we could reflect connectedly neither on nature nor our own minds. Now this is possible only on the assumption or hypothesis of a One as the ground and cause of the universe, and which, in all succession and through all changes, is the subject neither of time nor change. The One must be con- templated as eternal and immutable. Well! the idea, which is the basis of religion, commanded by the conscience and required by mo- rality, contains the same truths, or at least truths that can be expressed in no other terms ,* but this idea presents itself to our mind with additional attri- butes, and those too not formed by mere abstraction and negation — with the attributes of holiness, pro- vidence, love, justice, and mercy. It comprehends, moreover, the independent (extra-mundane) existence and personality of the Supreme One, as our Creator, Lord, and Judge. The hypothesis of a one ground and principle of the universe (necessary as an hypothesis, but having mily a logical and conditional necessity), is thus raised into the idea of the Living God, the supreme object of our faith, love, fear, and adoration. Religion and morality do indeed constrain us to declare him eter- nal and immutable. But if from the eternity of the 121 AIDS TO REFLECTION. Supreme Being a reasoner should deduce the impos- sibility of a creation ; or conclude with Aristotle, that the creation was co-eternal ; or, like the later Plato- nists, should turn creation into emanation, and make the universe proceed from the Deity, as the sunbeams from the solar orb; — or if from the divine immuta bility he should infer that all prayer and supplication must be vain and superstitious ; then however evident and logically necessary such conclusions may appear, it is scarcely worth our while to examine, whether they are so or not. The positions must be false. For were they true, the idea would lose the sole ground of its reality. It would be no longer the idea in- tended by the believer in his premiss — in the premiss, with which alone religion and morality are concerned. The very subject of the discussion would be changed. It would no longer be the God, in whom we believe ; but a stoical Fate, or the super- essential One of Plotinus, to whom neither intelli- gence, nor self-consciousness, nor life, nor even being can be attributed ; or lastly, the World itself, the indivisible one and only substance (substantia una et unica) of Spinoza, of which all 'phanomena^ all parti- cular and individual things, lives, minds, thoughts, and actions are but modifications. Let the believer never be alarmed by objections wholly speculative, however plausible on speculative grounds such objections may appear, if he can but satisfy himself, that the result is repugnant to the dictates of conscience, and irreconcilable with the interests of morality. For to baffle the objector we have only to demand of him, by what right and under what authority he converts a thought into a substance, or asserts the existence of a real some- what corresponding to a notion not derived from the experience of his senses. It will be to no ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 125 purpose for him to answer that it is a legitimate notion. The notion may have its mould in the understanding ; hut its realisation must be the work of the fancy. A reflecting reader will easily apply these remarks to the subject of Election, one of the stumbling stones in the ordinary conceptions of the Christian Faith, to which the Infidel points in scorn, and which far better men pass by in silent perplexity. Yet, surely, from mistaken conceptions of the doctrine. I suppose the person, with whom I am arguing, already so far a believer, as to have convinced himself, both that a state of enduring bliss is attainable under certain conditions ; and that these conditions consist in his compliance with the directions given and rules pre- scribed in the Christian Scriptures. These rules he likewise admits to be such, that, by the very law and constitution of the human mind, a full and faithful compliance with them cannot but have consequences of some sort or other. But these consequences are moreover distinctly described, enumerated, and pro- mised in the same Scriptures, in which the conditions are recorded ; and though some of them may be apparent to God only, yet the greater number of them are of such a nature that they cannot exist unknown to the individual, in and for whom they exist. As little possible is it, that he should find these consequences in himself, and not find in them the sure marks and the safe pledges that he is at the time in the right road to the life promised under these conditions. Now I dare assert that no such man, however fervent his charity, and however deep his humility may be, can peruse the records of history with a reflecting spirit, or look round, the world with an observant eye, and not find himself compelled to admit, that all men are not on the right 126 AIDS TO REFLECTION. road. He cannot help judging that even in Christian countries many, — a fearful many, — have not their faces turned toward it. This then is a mere matter of fact. Now comes the question. Shall the believer, who thus hopes on the appointed grounds of hope, attribute this distinction exclusively to his own resolves and strivings, — or if not exclusively, yet primarily and principally ? Shall he refer the first movements and preparations to his own will and under- standing, and bottom his claim to the promises on his own comparative excellence? If not, if no man dare take this honour to himself, to whom shall he assign it, if not to that Being in whom the promise originated, and on whom its fulfilment depends? If he stop here, who shall blame him ? By what argument shall his reasoning be invalidated, that might not be urged with equal force against any essential difference between obedient and disobedient, Christian and worldling; — that would not imply that both sorts alike are, in the sight of God, the sons of God by adoption? If he stop here, I say, who shall drive him from his position? For thus far he is practically concerned ; — this the conscience requires ; this the highest interests of morality demand. It is a question of facts, of the will and the deed, to argue against which on the abstract notions and possibilities of the speculative reason, is as unreasonable as an attempt to decide a question of colours by pure geometry, or to unsettle the classes and specific characters of natural history by the doc- trine of fluxions. But if the self-examinant will abandon this posi- tion, and exchange the safe circle of religion and practical reason for the shifting sand-wastes and mirages of speculative theology; if instead of seeking ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 127 after the marks of Election in himself, he undertakes to determine the ground and origin, the possibility and mode of Election itself in relation to God ; — in this case, and whether he does it for the satisfaction of curiosity, or from the ambition of answering those. who would call God himself to account, why and by what right certain souls were born in Africa instead of England ; or why — (seeing that it is against all reason and goodness to choose a worse, when, being omnipotent, He could have created a better) — God did not create beasts men, and men angels ; — or why God created any men but with foreknowledge of their obedience, and left any occasion for Election ; — in this case, I say, we can only regret that the inquirer had not been better instructed in the nature, the bounds, the true purposes and proper objects of his intellectual faculties, and that he had not previously asked himself, by what appropriate sense, or organ of knowledge, he hoped to secure an insight into a nature which was neither an object of his senses, nor a part of his self-consciousness ; and so leave him to ward off shadowy spears with the shadow of a shield, and to retaliate the nonsense of blasphemy with the abracadabra of presumption. He that will fly without wings must fly in his dreams : and til] he awakes, will not find out that to fly in a dream is but to dream of flying. Thus then the doctrine of Election is in itself a necessary inference from an undeniable fact — neces- sary at least for all who hold that the best of men are what they are through the grace of God. In relation to the believer it is a hope, which if it spring out of Christian principles, be examined by the tests and nourished by the means prescribed in Scripture, will become a lively and an assured hope, but which cannot in this life pass into knowledge, 128 AIDS TO HEFLECTION. much less certainty of foreknowledge. The contrary belief does indeed make the article of Election both tool and parcel of a mad and mischievous fanaticism. But with what force and clearness does not the Apostle confute, disclaim, and prohibit the pretence, treating it as a downright contradiction in terms ! See Bom. viii. 24. But though I hold the doctrine handled as Leighton handles it (that is practically, morally, humanly), rational, safe, and of essential importance, I see reasons* resulting from the peculiar circum- stances, under which St. Paul preached and wrote, why a discreet minister of the Gospel should avoid the frequent use of the term, and express the meaning in other words perfectly equivalent and equally Scriptural ; lest in saying truth he may convey error. Had my purpose been confined to one particular * For example : at the date of St. Paul's Epistles, the Roman world may be resembled to a mass in the furnace in the first moment of fusion, here a speck and there a spot of the melted metal shining pure and brilliant amid the scum and dross. To have received the name of Christian was a privilege, a high and distinguishing favour. No wonder therefore, that in St. Paul's writings the words, Elect and Election often, nay, most often, mean the same as iKKa\ov/j.€yoi, ecclesia, that is, those who have been called out of the world : and it is a dangerous perversion of the Apostle's word to interpret it in the sense, in which it was used by our Lord, viz. in opposition to the called. (Many are called but few chosen.) In St. Paul's sense and at that time the believers collectively formed a small and select number ; and every Christian, real or nominal, was one of the elect. Add too, that this ambiguity is increased by the accidental circum- stance, that the Kyriac, aides Dominica;, Lord's House, kirk; and ecclesia, the sum total of the iKKaXov/xevoi, cvocati, called out ; are both rendered by the same word, Church. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 129 tenet, an apology might be required for so long a comment. Bat the Reader will, I trust, have already perceived, that my object has been to establish a general rule of interpretation and vindication appli- cable to all doctrinal tenets, and especially to the (so called) mysteries of the Christian Faith : to provide a safety-lamp for religious inquirers. Now this I find in the principle, that all revealed truths are to be judged of by us, so far only as they are possible sub- jects of human conception, or grounds of practice, or in some way connected with our moral and spiritual interests. In order to have a reason for forming a judgment on any given article, we must be sure that we possess a reason, by and according to which a judgment may be formed. Now in respect of all truths, to which a real independent existence is assigned, and which yet are not contained in, or to be imagined under, any form of space or time, it is strictly demonstrable, that the human reason, consi- dered abstractly, as the source of positive science and theoretical insight, is not such a reason. At the utmost, it has only a negative voice. In other words, nothing can be allowed as true for the human mind, which directly contradicts this reason. But even here, before we admit the existence of any such con- tradiction, we must be careful to ascertain, that there is no equivocation in play, that two different subjects are not confounded under one and the same word. A striking instance of this has been adduced in the difference between the notional One of the Ontolo- gists, and the idea of the living God. But if not the abstract or speculative reason, and yet a reason there must be in order to a rational belief — then it must be the practical reason of man, comprehending the will, the conscience, the moral being with its inseparable interests and affections — * J 30 AIDS TO RK FLECTION. that reason, namely, which is the organ of wisdom, and, as far as man is concerned, the source of living and actual truths. From these premisses we may further deduce, that every doctrine is to be interpreted in reference to those, to whom it has been revealed, or who have or have had the means of knowing or hearing the same. For instance : the doctrine that there is no name under heaven, by tvhich a man can be saved, but the name of Jesus. If the word here rendered name, may be understood — (as it well may, and as in other texts it must be) — as meaning the power, or origina- ting cause, I see no objection on the part of the practical reason to our belief of the declaration in its whole extent. It is true universally or not true at all. If there be any redemptive power not contained in the power of Jesus, then Jesus is not the Redeemer* not the Redeemer of the world, not the Jesus, that is, Saviour of mankind. But if with Tertullian and Augustine we make the text assert the condemnation and misery of all who are not Christians by Baptism and explicit belief in the revelation of the New Covenant — then, I say, the doctrine is true to all intents and purposes. It is true, in every respect, in which any practical, moral, or spiritual interest 01 end can be connected with its truth. It is true in respect to every man who has had, or who might have had, the Gospel preached to him. It is true and obligatory for every Christian community and for every individual believer, wherever the opportunity is afforded of spreading the light of the Gospel, and making known the name of the only Saviour and Redeemer. For even though the uninformed Hea- thens should not perisn, the guilt of their perishing will attach to those who not only had no certainty of their safety, but who are commanded to act on the ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 131 supposition of the contrary. But if, on the other- hand, a theological dogmatist should attempt to per- suade me that this text was intended to give us an historical knowledge of God's future actions and dealings — and for the gratification of our curiosity to inform us, that Socrates and Phocion, together with all the savages in the woods and w T ilds of Africa and America, will be sent to keep company with the Devil and his angels in everlasting torments — I should remind him, that the purpose of Scripture was to teach us our duty, not to enable us to sit in judgment on the souls of our fellow creatures. One other instance will, I trust, prevent all mis- conception of my meaning. I am clearly convinced, that the Scriptural and only true* idea of God will, in its development, be found to involve the idea of the Tri-unity. But I am likewise convinced that previ- ously to the promulgation of the Gospel the doctrine had no claim on the faith of mankind : though it might have been a legitimate contemplation for a speculative philosopher, a theorem in metaphysics valid in the Schools. I form a certain notion in my mind, and say : This is w 7 hat I understand by the term, God. From books and conversation I find that the learned gene- rally connect the same notion with the same word. I then apply the rules laid down by the masters of logic, for the involution and evolution of terms, and prove (to as many as agree with me in my premisses) that the notion, God, involves the notion, Trinity. I now pass out of the Schools, and enter into discourse * Or, I may add, any idea which does not either identify the Creator with the creation ; or else represent the Supreme Being as a mere impersonal Law or ordo ordinans, differing from the law of gravitation only by its universality. K 2 132 AIDS TO REFLECTION. with some friend or neighbour, unversed in the formal sciences, unused to the process of abstraction, neither logician nor metaphysician ; but sensible and single- minded, an Israelite indeed, trusting in the Lord God of his fathers, even the God of Abraham, of Isaac, and of Jacob. If I speak of God to him, what will he understand me to be speaking of? What does he mean, and suppose me to mean, by the word? An accident or product of the reasoning faculty, or an abstraction which the human mind forms by reflect- ing on its own thoughts and forms of thinking? No. By God he understands me to mean an existing and self subsisting reality,* a real and personal Being — * I have elsewhere remarked on the assistance which those that labour after distinct conceptions would receive from the reintroduction of the terms objective and subjective, objective and subjective reality, and the like, as substitutes for real and notional, and to the exclusion of the false antithesis between real and ideal. For the student in that noblest of the sciences, the scire teipsum, the advantage would be espe- cially great.* The few sentences that follow, in illustration of the terms here advocated, will not, I trust, be a waste of the reader's time. The celebrated Euler having demonstrated certain pro- perties of arches, adds : " All experience is in contradiction to this ; but this is no reason for doubting its truth." The words sound paradoxical ; but mean no more than this — that the mathematical properties of figure and space are not less certainly the properties of figure and space because they can never be perfectly realised, in wood, stone, or iron. Now this assertion of Euler's might be expressed at once, briefly and simply, by saying, that the properties in question were subjectively true, though not objectively — or that the * See the "Selection from Mr. Coleridge's Literary Correspondence," Letter II., reprinted in " Lectures on Shakespeare," vol. ii., pp. 281 — 305. — Ed. ON SrilliTUAIi RELIGION. 133. even the Person, the i am, who sent Moses to his forefathers in Egypt. Of the actual existence of this divine Being he has the same historical assurance as mathematical arch possessed a subjective reality though incapable of being realised objectively. In like manner if I had to express my conviction that space was not itself a thing, but a mode or form of per- ceiving, or the inward ground and condition in the perci- pient, in consequence of which things are seen as outward and co-existing, I convey this at once by the words : — Space is subjective, or space is real in and for the subject alone. If I am asked, Why not say, in and for the mind, which every one would understand ? I reply : we know indeed, that all minds are subjects ; but are by no means certain that all subjects are minds. For a mind is a subject that knows itself, or a subject that is its own object.* The inward principle of growth and individual form in every seed and plant is a subject, and without any exertion of poetic privilege poets may speak of the soul of the flower. But the man would be a dreamer, who otherwise than poetically should speak of roses and lilies as self- conscious subjects. Lastly, by the assistance of the term3, Object and Subject, thus used as correspondent opposites, or as negative and positive in physics, — (for example negative and positive electricity,) — we may arrive at the distinct import and proper use of the strangely misused word, Idea. And as the forms of logic are all borrowed from geometry — (ratiocinatio discursiva formas suas sive canonas recipit ab intuitu)— I may be permitted thence to elucidate my present meaning. Every line may be, and by * A dditional note. — Nay, the distinction has an important function in science as supplying the clearest and simplest definition of Life as distinguished from Mind : vis., Mind is a subject that has its object in itself: Life, a subject endued with the tendency to produce an object for itself; and the ■finding of itself therein is sensation. Empfindung. How do you find yourself] 134 AIDS TO REFLECTION. of theirs ; confirmed indeed by the book of Nature, as soon and as far as that stronger and better light has taught him to read and construe it — confirmed the ancient Geometricians was, considered as a point pro- duced, the two extremes being its poles, while the point itself remains in, or is at least represented by, the mid point, the indifference of the two poles or correlative oppo- sites. Logically applied, the two extremes or poles are named thesis and antithesis. Thus in the line, I T A we have T = thesis, A = antithesis, and Iz=punctumindifferens sive amphotericum, which latter is to be conceived as both in as far as it may be either of the two former. Observe : not both at the same time in the same relation : for this would be the identity of T and A, not the indifference ; but so, that relatively to A, I is equal to T, and relatively to T, it becomes — A. For the purposes of the universal Noetic, in which we require terms of most comprehension and least specific import, the Noetic Pentad might, perhaps, be, — 1. Prothesis. 2. Thesis. 4. Mesothesis. 3. Antithesis. 5. Synthesis. Prothesis. Sum. Thesis. Mesothesis. Antithesis. Res. Agere. Ago, Patior. Synthesis. Agens. 1. Verb substantive ==. Prothesis, as expressing the identity or co-inherence of act and being. 2. Substantive == Thesis, expressing being. 3. Verb = An- tithesis, expressing act. 4. Infinitive = Mesothesis, as being either substantive or verb, or both at once, only in different relations. 5. Participle — Synthesis. Thus, in chemistry, sulphuretted hydrogen is an acid relatively to the more powerful alkalis, and an alkali relatively to a powerful acid. Yet one other remark and I pass to the question. In order ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 185 by it, I say, but not derived from it. Now by what right can I require this man — (and of such men the great majority of serious believers consisted previously to render the constructions of pure mathematics applicable to philosophy, the Pythagoreans, I imagine, represented the line as generated, or, as it were, radiated, by a point not contained in the line but independent, and (in the language of that School) transcendant to all production, which it caused but did not partake in. Facit, non patitur. This was the punctum invisibile et prcesuppositum : and in this way the Pythagoreans guarded against the error of Pantheism, into which the later Schools fell. The assumption of this point I call the logical prothesis. "We have now therefore four relations of thought expressed : 1. Prothesis, or the identity of T and A, which is neither, because in it, as the transcendant of both, both are contained and exist as one. Taken absolutely, this finds its application in the Supreme Being alone, the Pytha- gorean Tetractys ; the ineffable name, to which no image can be attached; the point, which has no (real) opposite or counter- point. But relatively taken and inadequately, the germinal power of every seed might be generalised under the relation of Identity. 2. Thesis, or position. 3. Antithesis, or oppo- sition. 4. Indifference. To which when we add the Synthesis or composition, in its several forms of equilibrium, as in quiescent electricity ; of neutralisation, as of oxygen and hydrogen in water ; and of predominance, as of hydrogen and carbon with hydrogen predominant, in pure alcohol ; or of carbon and hydrogen, with the comparative predominance of the carbon, in oil ; we complete the five most general forms or preconceptions of constructive logic. And now for the answer to the question, what is an Idea, if it mean neither an impression on the senses, nor a definite conception, nor an abstract notion ? (And if it does mean any one of these, the word is superfluous : and while it remains undetermined which of these is meant by the word, or whether it is not which you please, it is worse than super- fluous.)*" But supposing the word to have a meaning of its See the '-'Statesman's Manual," Appendix adfinem. — Ed. 136 AIDS TO REFLECTION. to the light of the Gospel) — to receive a notion of mine, wholly alien from his hahits of thinking, because it may be logically deduced from another notion, with which he was almost as little ac- quainted, and not at all concerned ? Grant for a moment, that the latter (that is, the notion, with which I first set out) as soon as it is combined with the assurance of a corresponding reality becomes identical with the true and effective Idea of God ! Grant, that in thus realising the notion I am war- ranted by revelation, the law of conscience, and the interests and necessities of my moral being ! Yet by what authority, by what inducement, am I entitled to attach the same reality to a second notion, a notion drawn from a notion ? It is evident, that if I have the same right, it must be on the same grounds. Revelation must have assured it, my conscience required it — or in some way or other I must have an interest in this belief. It must concern me, as a moral and responsible being. Now these grounds were first given in the redemption of mankind by Christ, the Saviour and Mediator : and by the utter incompatibility of these offices with a mere creature. On the doctrine of Redemption depends the faith, the duty, of believing in the divinity of our Lord. And this again is the strongest ground for the reality own, what does it mean 1 What is an idea 1 In answer to this I commence with the absolutely Eeal as the prothesis ; the subjectively Real as the thesis ; the objectively Real as the antithesis; and I affirm, that Idea is the indifference of the two — so namely, that if it be conceived as in the subject, the idea is an object, and possesses objective truth ; but if in an object, it is then a subject and is necessarily thought of as exercising the powers of a subject. Thus an idea conceived as subsisting in an object becomes a law; and a law contem. plated subjectively in a mind is an idea. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 157 of that Idea, in which alone this divinity can be received without breach of the faith in the unity of the Godhead. But such is the Idea of the Trinity Strong as the motives are that induce me to defer the full discussion of this great article of the Christian Creed, I cannot withstand the request of several divines, whose situation and extensive services entitle them to the utmost deference, that I should so far deviate from my first intention as at least to indicate the point on which I stand, and to prevent the mis- conception of my purpose : as if I held the doctrine of the Trinity for a truth which men could be called on to believe by mere force of reasoning, indepen- dently of any positive Revelation. Now though it might be sufficient to say, that I regard the very phrase " Revealed Religion " as a pleonasm, inasmuch as a religion not revealed is, in my judgment, no religion at all ; I have no objection to announce more particularly and distinctly what I do and what I do not maintain on this point : provided that in the following paragraph, with this view inserted, the Reader will look for nothing more than a plain statement of my opinions. The grounds on which they rest, and the arguments by which they are to be vindicated, are for another place. I hold then, it is true, that all the so called de- monstrations of a God either prove too little, as that from the order and apparent purpose in nature ; or too much, namely, that the World is itself God : or they clandestinely involve the conclusion in the pre- misses, passing off the mere analysis or explication of an assertion for the proof of it, — a species of logical legerdemain not unlike that of the jugglers at a fair, who putting into their mouths what seems to be a walnut, draw out a score yards of ribbon. On this Sophism rest the pretended demonstrations 138 AIDS TO REFLECTION. of a God grounded on the postulate of a First Cause.* And lastly, in all these demonstrations the demonstrators presuppose the idea or concep- tion of a God without being able to authenticate it, that is, to give an account whence they obtained it. For it is clear, that the proof first mentioned and the most natural and convincing of all — (the cosmo- logical, I mean, or that from the order in nature) — presupposes the ontological — that is the proof of a God from the necessity and necessary objectivity of the Idea. If the latter can assure us of a God as an exist- ing reality, the former will go far to prove his power, wisdom, and benevolence. f All this I hold. But I * Additional note. — The position is, as b : A ', ' c : X, — b . . c being the two products, and A, X, the producent causes, i. e., as a Watch to the Human Intelligence, so the World to the Divine Intelligence. The sceptic objects that neither the products nor the producents are ejusdem generis, consequently not subjects of analogy ; — A existing only as A -f y, and X as X— y. — X# d may differ from Z— yd; namely by y : and yet we may reason by analogy from X to Z : thus — H I /, similar in kind to E F y, are products of Z by virtue of d. But if y were the necessary condition of d, d is pre- cluded by - y, and between X — y—d and Z—y — d there is no analogy, X=man, y =z finiteness, d = intelligence, Z = God, — y=- Infinity. + Additional note. — When the cosmological Proof goes further, viz., to prove the existence of a Supreme Being, it proceeds on an analogy questionable in both its * factors. First the Sceptic impugns the conclusion from things made to things that grow (from a watch to a sun-flower) or to things -that have no known beginning (the metals, for instance), and likewise the inference from the cause of the composition of a whole, to the cause of the existence of its ultimate particles, as a fierdfiao-is els 'aWo yepos. And again, he objects that the difference of the known from the inferred * Viz. the Products and the Productors. ON SPIKITUAL KELIGION. 139 also hold, that this truth, the hardest to demonstrate, is the one which of all others least needs to be de- monstrated ; that though there may be no conclusive demonstrations of a good, wise, living, and personal God, there are so many convincing reasons for it, within and without — a grain of sand sufficing, and a whole universe at hand to echo the decision ! — that for every mind not devoid of all reason, and despe- rately conscience-proof, the truth which it is the least possible to prove, it is little less than impossible not to believe ; — only indeed just so much short of impos- sible, as to leave some room for the will and the moral election, and thereby to keep it a truth of religion, and the possible subject of a commandment.* agent, viz., the finiteness of man contrasted with the infinity of God, is the condition and co-efficient cause of that intelli- gence in the former which is to constitute the similarity ; consequently, the supposed analogy fails in the positive Ingredient, i.e., the point of likeness. It is no analogy. You infer (Spinosa might say) pure intelligence in a finite being, as the cause of a time-piece, an intelligence in an infinite being as the cause of a world. But the very intelligence from which you draw that inference, is wholly conditioned, and in part constituted by that finiteness. To invalidate this plea, we must refer to an Idea, of in- telligence, having its evidence in itself, and which must be shown to be the necessary apposition and antecedent of the intelligence, our conception of which is generalised from the understandings of men. We must assert an intelligence thab neither supposes nor requires a finiteness by imperfection, i. e., Reason. But in the attempt we pass out of the cos- mological Proof, the Proof a posteriori, and from the facts, into the ontological, or the Proof a priori, and from the Idea. * In a letter to a friend on the mathematical Atheists of the French Revolution, La Lande and others, or rather on a young man of distinguished abilities, but an avowed 140 AIDS TO REFLECTION On this account I do not demand of a Deist, that he should adopt the doctrine of the Trinity. For he might very well be justified in replying, that he re jected the doctrine, not because it could not be de- monstrated, nor yet on the score of any incompre- hensibilities and seeming contradictions that might be objected to it, as knowing that these might be, and in fact had been, urged with equal force against a personal God under any form capable of love and veneration ; but because he had not the same theo- retical necessity, the same interests and instincts of reason for the one hypothesis as for the other. It is not enough, the Deist might justly say, that there is no cogent reason why I should not believe the Trinity ; you must show me some cogent reason why I should. But the case is quite different with a Christian, who accepts the Scriptures as the word of God, yet refuses his assent to the plainest declarations of these Scriptures, and explains away the most express texts and proselyting partizan of their tenets, I concluded with these words : " The man w T ho will believe nothing but by force of demonstrative evidence — (even though it is strictly demonstrable that the demonstrability required would coun- tervene all the purposes of the truth in question, all that render the belief of the same desirable or obligatory) — is not in a state of mind to be reasoned with on any subject. But if he further denies the fact of the law of conscience, and the essential difference between right and wrong, I confess, he puzzles me. I cannot without gross inconsistency appeal to his conscience and moral sense, or I should admonish him that, as an honest man, he ought to advertise himself with a Cavete amines/ Scelus sum. And as an honest man myself, I dare not advise him on prudential grounds to keep his opinions secret, lest I should make myself his accomplice, and be helping him on with a wrap rascal." ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 141 into metaphor and hyperbole, because the literal and obvious interpretation is (according to his notions) absurd and contrary to reason. He is bound to show, that it is so in any sense, not equally applicable tc the texts asserting the being, infinity, and personality of God the Father, the Eternal and Omnipresent One, who created the heaven and the earth. And the more is he bound to do this, and the greater is my right to demand it of him, because the doctrine of Redemp- tion from sin supplies the Christian with motives and reasons for the divinity of the Redeemer far more concerning and coercive subjectively, that is, in the economy of his own soul, than are all the inducements that can influence the Deist objectively, that is, in the interpretation of nature. Do I then utterly exclude the speculative reason from theology ? No ! It is its office and rightful pri- vilege to determine on the negative truth of whatever we are required to believe. The doctrine must not contradict any universal principle : for this would be a doctrine that contradicted itself. Or philosophy ? No. It may be and has been the servant and pioneer of faith by convincing the mind that a doctrine is cogitable, that the soul can present the idea to itself; and that if we determine to contemplate, or think of, the subject at all, so and in no other form can this be effected. So far are both logic and philosophy to be received and trusted. But the duty, and in some cases and for some persons even the right, of think- ing on subjects beyond the bounds of sensible expe- rience ; the grounds of the real truth ; the life, the substance, the hope, the love, in one word, the faith ; — these are derivatives from the practical- moral, and spiritual nature and being of man 142 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM III. BURNET AND COLERIDGE. That Religion is designed to improve the nature and faculties of man, in order to the right governing of our actions, to the securing the peace and progress, external and internal, of individuals and of commu- nities, and lastly, to the rendering us capable of a more perfect state, entitled the kingdom of God, to which the present life is probationary — this is a truth, which all who have truth only in view, will receive on its own evidence. If such tnen be the main end of religion altogether (the improvement namely of our nature and faculties), it is plain, that every part of religion is to be judged by its relation to this main end. And since the Christian scheme is religion in its most perfect and effective form, a revealed religion, and, therefore, in a special sense proceeding from that Being who made us and knows what we are, of course therefore adapted to the needs and capabilities of hu- man nature ; nothing can be a part of this holy Faith that is not duly proportioned to this end. COMMENT. This Aphorism should be borne in mind, whenever a theological resolve is proposed to us as an article of faith. Take, for instance, the determinations passed at the Synod of Dort, concerning the absolute decrees of God in connection with his omniscience and fore- knowledge. Or take the decision in the Council of Trent on Transubstantiation, founded on the difference between its two kinds ; the one in which both the substance and the accidents are changed, the same matter remaining — as in the conversion of water into ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 143 wine at Cana : the other, in which the matter and the substance are changed, the accidents remaining un- altered as in the Eucharist — this latter being Tran- substantiation far eminence: * — and further that it is indispensable to a saving faith carefully to distinguish the one kind from the other, and to believe both, and to believe the necessity of believing both in order to salvation ! For each of these extra- Scriptural articles of faith the preceding Aphorism supplies a safe crite- rion. Will the belief tend to the improvement of any of my moral or intellectual faculties ? But before I can be convinced that a faculty will be improved, I must be assured that it exists. On all these dark say- ings, therefore, of Dort or Trent, it is quite sufficient to ask, by what faculty, organ, or inlet of knowledge, we are to assure ourselves that the words mean any thing, or correspond to any object out of our own * ideo persuasum semper in Ecclesia Dei fuit, idque nunc denuo sancta hcec Synodus declarat, per consecrationem panis et vini conversionem fieri totius substantia panis in sub- stantiam corporis Christi Domini nostri, et totius substantias vini in substantiam sanguinis ejus. — Sess. xii. c. 4. Totus — et integer Christus sub panis specie, et sub quavis ipsius speciei parte, totus item sub vini specie, et sub ejus partibus existit. — lb. e. 3. Si quis dixerit, in sacrosancto Eucharistiaz Sacramento zzmanere substantiam panis et vini una cum corpore et sanguine Domini nostri Jesio Christi, negaveritque mirabilam illam et singularem conversionem totius substantial panis in corpus, et totius substantial vini in sanguinem, manentibus duntaxat spe- ciebus panis et vini; quam quidem conversionem Catholica Ecclesia Transsubstantiationem appellat — Anathema sit. — lb. Can. 12. Si quis negaverit, in venerabili Sacramento Eucharistiai sub tmaquaque specie, et sub singidis cujusque speciei partibus, sepa* ratione facta, totum Christum contineri—Anaihema sit.— lb. Can. d.—Ed. 144 AIDS TO REFLECTION. mind or even in it : unless indeed the mere craving and striving to think on, after all the materials for thinking have been exhausted, can be called an ob- ject. When a number of trust- worthy persons as- sure me, that a portion of fluid which they saw to be water, by some change in the fluid itself or in their senses, suddenly acquired the colour, taste, smell, and exhilarating property of wine, I perfectly under- stand what they tell me, and likewise by what facul- ties they might have come to the knowledge of the fact. But if any one of the number, not satisfied with my acquiescence in the fact, should insist on my believing that the matter remained the same, the substance and the accidents having been removed in order to make way for a different substance with dif- ferent accidents, I must entreat his permission to wait till I can discover in myself any faculty, by which there can be presented to me a matter distinguishable from accidents, and a substance that is different from both. It is true, I have a faculty of articulation ; but I do not see that it can be improved by my using it for the formation of words without meaning, or at best, for the utterance of thoughts, that mean only the act of so thinking, or of trying so to think. But the end of religion is the improvement of our nature and faculties. I sum up the whole in one great practical maxim. The object of religious contempla- tion, and of a truly spiritual faith, is " the ways of God to man." Of the workings of the Godhead God himsplf has told us, My ways are not as your ways nor my thoughts as your thoughts. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 145 A.PHORISM IY. THE CHARACTERISTIC DIFFERENCE BETWEEN THE DISCIPLINE OF THE ANCIENT PHILOSOPHERS AND THE DISPENSATION OF THE GOSPEL. By undeceiving, enlarging, and informing the intel- lect, Philosophy sought to purify and to elevate the moral character. Of course, those alone could receive the latter and incomparably greater benefit, who by natural capacity and favourable contingencies of for- tune were fit recipients of the former. How small the number, we scarcely need the evidence of history to assure us. Across the night of Paganism, Philo- sophy flitted on, like the lantern-fly of the Tropics, a light to itself, and an ornament, but alas ! no more than an ornament, of the surrounding darkness. Christianity reversed the order. By means acces- sible to all, by inducements operative on all, and by convictions, the grounds and materials of which all men might find in themselves, her first step was tc cleanse the heart. But the benefit did not stop here. In preventing the rank vapours that steam up from the corrupt heart, Christianity restores the intellect likewise to its natural clearness. By relieving the mind from the distractions and importunities of the unruly passions, she improves the quality of the un- derstanding : while at the same time she presents for its contemplations objects so great and so bright as cannot but enlarge the organ, by which they are con- templated. The fears, the hopes, the remembrances, the anticipations, the inward and outward experience, the belief and the faith, of a Christian, form of them- selves a philosophy and a sum of knowledge, which a life spent in the Grove of Academus, or the painted Porch, could not have attained or collected. The 146 AIDS TO REFLECTION. result is contained in the fact of a wide and still widening Christendom. Yet I dare not say that the effects have been pro- portionate to the divine wisdom of the scheme. Too soon did the Doctors of the Church forget that the heart, the moral nature, was the beginning and the* end; and that truth, knorwledge, and insight were comprehended in its expansion. This was the truA and first apostasy — when in council and synod the divine humanities of the Gospel gave way to specu- lative systems, and religion became a science of sha- dows under the name of theology, or at best a bare skeleton of truth, without life or interest, alike inac cessible and unintelligible to the majority of Chris- tians. For these therefore there remained only rites and ceremonies and spectacles, shows and semblances. Thus among the learned the substa?ice of things hoped for (Heb. xi. 1.) passed off into notions ; and for the unlearned the surfaces of things became * substance. The Christian world was for centuries divided into the many, that did not think at all, and the few who did nothing but think — both alike unreflecting, the one from defect of the act, the other from the absence of an object. APHORISM V. There is small chance of truth at the goal where there is not a child-like humility at the starting-post, COMMENT. Humility is the safest ground of docility, and do- cility the surest promise of docibility. Where there is no working of self-love in the heart that secures a leaning before hand ; where the great magnet of the * Yiriumet proprietatum, quce non nisi de suh-siantibus prce. dicari possunt, formis $up>erstantxbus attributio, est Superstitio, ON SPIRITUAL KEUGION. 147 planet is not overwhelmed or obscured by partial masses of iron in close neighbourhood to the com- pass of the judgment though hidden or unnoticed ; there will this great desideratum be found of a child like humility Do I then say, that I am to be influenced by no interest? Far from it ! There is an interest of truth : or how could there be a love of truth ? And that a love of truth for its own sake, and merely as truth, is possible, my soul bears wit- ness to itself in its inmost recesses. But there are other interests — those of goodness, of beauty, of uti- lity. It would be a sorry proof of the humility I am extolling, were I to ask for angels wings to overfly my own human nature. I exclude none of these It is enough if the " lene clinamen,"' the gentle bias, be given by no interest that concerns myself other than as I am a man, and included in the great family of mankind ; but which does therefore especially con- cern me, because being a common interest of all men it must needs concern the very essentials of my being, and because these essentials, as existing in me, are especially intrusted to my particular charge. Widely different from this social and truth-attracted bias, different both in its nature and its effects, is the interest connected with the desire of distinguishing } T ourself from other men, in order to be distinguished by them. Hoc revera est inter te et veritateni. This interest does indeed stand between thee and truth. I might add between thee and thy own soul. It is scarcely more at variance with the love of truth than it is unfriendly to the attainment of it. By your own act you have appointed the many as your judges and appraisers : for the anxiety to be admired is a love- less passion, ever strongest with regard to those by whom we are least known and least cared for, loud on the hustings, gay in the ball-room, mute and sullen l 2 148 AIDS TO REFLECTION. at the family fireside. What you have acquired by patient thought and cautious discrimination, demands a portion of the same effort in those who are to receive it from you. But applause and preference are things of barter; and if you trade in them, expe- rience will soon teach you that there are easier and less unsuitable ways to win golden judgments than by at once taxing the patience and humiliating the self-opinion of your judges. To obtain your end, your words must be as indefinite as their thoughts ; and how vague and general these are even on objects of sense, the few who at a mature age have seriously set about the discipline of their faculties, and have honestly taken stock, best know by recollection of their own state. To be admired you must make your auditors believe at least that they understand what you say ; which, be assured, they never will, under such circumstances, if it be worth understand- ing, or if you understand your own soul. But while your prevailing motive is to be compared and appre- ciated, is it credible, is it possible, that you should in earnest seek for a knowledge which is and must remain a hidden light, a secret treasure ? Have you children, or have you lived among children, and do you not know, that in all things, in food, in medicine, in all their doings and abstainings they must believe in order to acquire a reason for their belief? But so is it with religious truths for all men. These we must all learn as children. The ground of the pre- vailing error on this point is the ignorance, that in spiritual concernments to believe and to understand are not diverse things, but the same thing in different periods of its growth. Belief is the seed, received into the will, of which the understanding or know- ledge is the flower, and the thing believed is the fruit. Unless ye believe ye cannot understand : and ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 149 unless ye be humble as children, ye not only will not* but ye cannot believe. Of such therefore is the Kingdom of Heaven. Yea, blessed is the calamity that makes us humble : though so repugnant thereto is our nature, in our present state, that after a while, it is to be feared, a second and sharper calamity would be wanted to cure us of our pride in having become so humble. Lastly, there are among us, though fewer and less in fashion than among our ancestors, persons who, like Shaftesbury, do not belong to " the herd of Epicurus," yet prefer a philosophic paganism to the morality of the Gospel. Now it would conduce, me- thinks, to the child- like humility we have been dis- coursing of, if the use of the term, virtue, in that high, comprehensive, and notional sense in which it was used by the ancient Stoics, were abandoned, as a relic of Paganism, to these modern Pagans : and if Christians restoring the word to its original import, namely, manhood or manliness, used it exclusively to express the quality of fortitude ; strength of character in relation to the resistance opposed by nature and the irrational passions to the dictates of reason : energy of will in preserving the line of rectitude tense and firm against the warping forces and trea- cheries of temptation. Surely, it were far less unseemly to value ourselves on this moral strength than on strength of body, or even strength of intellect. But we will rather value it for ourselves : and bearing in mind the old query, — Quis custodiet ipsos custodes? — we will value it the more, yea, then only will we allow it true spiritual worth, when we possess it as a gift of grace, a boon of mercy undeserved, a fulfilment of a free promise (] Cor. x. 13). What more is meant in this last paragraph, let the venerable "Hooker say for me in the following • — 150 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM VI. What is virtue but a medicine, and vice but a wound? Yea, we have so often deeply wounded ourselves with medicine, that God hath been fain to make wounds medicinable ; to secure by vice where virtue hath stricken; to suffer the just man to fall, that being raised he may be taught w T hat power it was which upheld him standing. I am not afraid to affirm it boldly with St. Augustine, that men puffed up through a proud opinion of their own sanctity and holiness receive a benefit at the hands of God, and are assisted with his grace when with his grace they are not assisted, but permitted (and that grievously) to transgress. Whereby, as they were through over- great liking of themselves supplanted [tripped up), so the dislike of that which did supplant them may establish them afterwards the surer. Ask the very soul of Peter, and it shall undoubtedly itself make you this answer : My eager protestations made in the glory of my spiritual strength I am ashamed of. But my shame and the tears, with which my presumption and my weakness were bew T ailed, recur in the songs of my thanksgiving. My strength had been my ruin, my fall hath proved my stay. APHORISM VII. The being and providence of One Living God, holy, gracious, merciful, the Creator and Preserver of all things, and a Father of the righteous ; the Moral Law in its 1 utmost height, breadth and purity; a state of retribution after death; the 2 resurrection of the dead ; and a day of Judgment — all these were known and received by the Jewish people, as esta- blished articles of the national Faith, at or before the OX SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 15 1 proclaiming of Christ by the Baptist. They are the ground-work of Christianity, and essentials in the Christian Faith, hut not its characteristic and pecu- liar doctrines : except indeed as they are confirmed, enlivened, realised and brought home to the whole being of man, head, heart, and spirit, by the truths and influences of the Gospel. Peculiar to Christianity are . I. The belief that a Mean of Salvation has been effected and provided for the human race by the in- carnation of the Son of God in the person of Jesus Christ; and that his life on earth, his sufferings, death, and resurrection, are not only proofs and manifestations, but likewise essential and effective parts of the great redemptive act, whereby also the obstacle from the corruption of our nature is rendered no longer insurmountable. II. The belief in the possible appropriation of this benefit by repentance and faith, including the aids that render an effective faith and repentance them- selves possible. III. The belief in the reception (by as many as shall be heirs of salvation) of a living and spiritual principle, a seed of life capable of surviving this natural life, and of existing in a divine and immortal state. IV. The belief in the awakening of the spirit in them that truly believe, and in the communion of the spirit, thus awakened, with the Holy Spirit. V. The belief in the accompanying and consequent gifts, graces, comforts, and privileges of the Spirit, which acting primarily on the heart and will cannot but manifest themselves in suitable works of love and obedience, that is, in right acts with right affections, from right principles. VI. Further, as Christians we are taught, that 152 AIDS TO KEFLECTION. these Works are the appointed signs and evidences of our Faith ; and that, under limitation of the power, the means, and the opportunities afforded us indivi- dually, the} 7 are the rule and measure, by which we are bound and enabled to .judge, of what spirit ice are. VII. All these, together with the doctrine of the Fathers re-proclaimed in the everlasting Gospel, we receive in the full assurance, that God beholds and will finally judge us with a merciful consideration of our infirmities, a gracious acceptance of our sincere though imperfect strivings, a forgiveness of our de- fects, through the mediation, and a completion of our deficiencies by the perfect righteousness, of the Man Christ Jesus, even the Word that was in the begin- ning with God, and who, being God, became man for the redemption of mankind. COMMENT. I earnestly entreat the Reader to pause awhile, and to join with me in reflecting on the preceding Aphorism. It has been my aim throughout this Work to enforce two points : 1. That Morality arising out of the reason and conscience of men, and Prudence, which in like manner flows out of the understanding and the natural wants and desires of the individual, are two distinct things. 2. That morality with prudence as its instrument has, consi- dered abstractedly, not only a value but a worth in itself. Now the question is (and it is a question which every man must answer for himself) — From what you know of yourself ; of your own heart and strength ; and from what history and personal expe- rience have led you to conclude of mankind generally ; dare you trust to it ? Dare you trust to it ? To it, and to it alone? If so, well! It is at your own ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 1 5 3 risk. I judge you not. Before Him, who cannot be mocked, you stand or fall. But if not, if you have had too good reason to know that your heart is deceitful and your strength weakness : if you are disposed to exclaim with Paul — The Law indeed is holy, just, good, spiritual ; but I am carnal, sold under sin : for that which I do, I allow not, and what I would, that I do not ! — in this case, there is a Voice that says, Come unto me ; and I will give you rest. This is the voice of Christ : and the conditions, under which the promise was given by him, are that you believe in him, and believe his words. And he has further assured you, that if you do so, you will obey him. You are, in short, to embrace the Christian Faith as your religion — those truths which St. Paul believed after his conversion, and not those only which he believed no less undoubtingl'y while he was persecut- ing Christ and an enemy of the Christian Eeligion. "With what consistency could I offer you this Volume as aids to reflection, if I did not call on you to ascer- tain in^the first instance what these truths are ! But these I could not lay before you without first enume- rating certain other points of belief, which though truths, indispensable truths, and truths compre- hended or rather pre-supposed in the Christian scheme, are yet not these truths. [John i. 17.) While doing this, I was aware that the positions, in the first paragraph of the preceding Aphorism, to which the numerical marks are affixed, will startle some of my readers. Let the following sentences serve for the notes corresponding to the marks : 1 Ye shall be holy ; for I the Lord your God am Jiohj * He hath shewed thee, man, what is good ■ and what doth the Lord require of thee, but to do * Lev.xix. 2. -Ed. 154 AIDS TO REFLECTION. justly, to love mercy, and walk humbly with thy God ? * To these summary passages from Moses and the Prophet (the first exhibiting the closed, the second the expanded, hand of the Moral law) I might add the authorities of Grotius and other more orthodox and not less learned divines, for the opinion that the Lords Prayer was a selection, and the famous passage [The hour is coming, &c. John v. 28, 29.] a citation by our Lord from the Liturgy of the Jewish Church But it will be sufficient to remind the reader, that the apparent difference between the prominent moral truths of the Old and those of the New Testament results from the latter having been written in Greek; while the conversations recorded by the Evangelists took place in Syro-Chaldaic or Aramaic. Hence it happened that where our Lord cited the original text, his biographers substituted the Septuagint Version, while our English Version is in both instances im- mediate and literal — in the Old Testament from the Hebrew Original, in the New Testament from the freer Greek translation. The text, I give you a new commandment, has no connection with the present subject. 2 There is a current mistake on this point likewise, though this article of the Jewish belief is not only as- serted by St. Paul, but is elsewhere spoken of as com- mon to the Twelve Tribes. The mistake consists in supposing the Pharisees to have been a distinct sect in doctrine, and in strangely over- rating the number of the Sadducees. The former w r ere distinguished not by holding, as matters of religious belief, articles dif- ferent from the Jewish Church at large ; but by their pretences to a more rigid orthodoxy, a more scrupu- lous performance. They were the strict professors * Micah, vi. 8 — Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 15%, of the day. The latter, the Sadducees, whose opi nions much more nearly resembled those of the Stoics than the Epicureans — (a remark that will appear pa- radoxical to those only who have abstracted their no- tions of the Stoic philosophy from Epictetus, Mark Antonine, and certain brilliant inconsistencies of Seneca), — were a handful of rich men, Romanised Jews, not more numerous than Infidels among us, and holden by the people at large in at least equal abhorrence. Their great argument was : that the belief of a future state of rewards and punishments injured or destroyed the purity of the Moral Law for the more enlightened classes, and weakened the in- fluence of the laws of the land for the people, the vulgar multitude. I will now suppose the reader to have thoughtfully reperused the paragraph containing the tenets pecu- liar to Christianity, and if he have his religious principles yet to form, I should expect to overhear a troubled murmur : How can I comprehend this ? How is this to be proved ? To the first question I should answer : Christianity is not a theory, or a speculation ; but a life ; — not a philosophy of life, but a life and a living process. To the second : Try it. It has been eighteen hundred years in existence : and has one individual left a record, like the following : — " I tried it : and it did not answer. I made the ex- periment faithfully according to the directions ; and the result has been, a conviction of my own credu- lity?" Have you, in your own experience, met with any one in whose words you could place full confi- dence, and who has seriously affirmed : — " I have given Christianity a fair trial. I was aware, that its promises were made only conditionally. But my heart bears, me witness, that I have to the utmost 156* AIDS TO REFLECTION. of my power complied with these conditions. Both outwardly and in the discipline of my inward acts and affections, I have performed the duties which it enjoins, and I have used the means which it pre- scribes. Yet my assurance of its truth has received no increase. Its 'promises have not been fulfilled : and I repent of my delusion ? " If neither your own experience nor the history of almost two thousand years has presented a single testimony to this pur- port ; and if you have read and heard of many who have lived and died bearing witness to the contrary : and if you have yourself met with some one, in whom on any other point you would place unqualified trust, who has on his own experience made report to you, that He is faithful who promised, and what He pro- mised He has proved Himself able to perform : is it bigotry, if I fear that the unbelief, which prejudges and prevents the experiment, has its source else- where than in the uncorrupted judgment : that not the strong free mind, but the enslaved will, is the true original infidel in this instance ? It would not be the first time, that a treacherous bosom-sin had suborned the understandings of men to bear false witness against its avowed enemy, the right though unreceived owner of the house, who had long warned that sin out, and waited only for its ejection to enter and take possession of the same. I have elsewhere in the present Work explained the difference between the Understanding and the Reason, by reason meaning exclusively the speculative or scientific power so called, the vovs, or mens of the ancients. And wider still is the distinction between the understanding and the spiritual mind. But no gift of God does or can contradict any other gift, except by misuse or misdirection. Most readily therefore do I admit, that there can be no contrariety ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 157 between revelation and the understanding ; unless you call the fact, that the skin, though sensible of the warmth of the sun, can convey no notion of its figure or its joyous light, or of the colours which it impresses on the clouds, a contrariety between the skin and the eye ; or infer that the cutaneous and the optic nerves contradict each other. But we have grounds to believe, that there are yet other rays or effluences from the sun, which neither feeling nor sight can apprehend, but which are to be inferred from the effects. And were it even so with regard to the spiritual sun, how would this contradict the understanding or the reason ? It is a sufficient proof of the contrary, that the mysteries in question are not in the direction of the understanding or the (speculative) reason. They do not move on the same line or plane with them, and therefore cannot con tradict them. But besides this, in the mystery that most immediately concerns the believer, that of the birth into a new and spiritual life, the common sense and experience of mankind come in aid of their faith. The analogous facts, which we know to be true, not only facilitate the apprehension of the facts promised to us, and expressed by the same words in conjunc- tion with a distinctive epithet ; but being confessedly not less incomprehensible, the certain knowledge of the one disposes us to the belief of the other. It removes at least all objections to the truth of the doctrine derived from the mysteriousness of its subject. The life, we seek after, is a mystery ; but so both in itself and in its origin is the life we have. In order to meet this question, however, with minds duly prepared, there are two preliminary inquiries to be decided ; the first respecting the purport, the second respecting the language, of the Gospel. First then, of the purport, namely, what the Gospel 153 AIDS TO BEFLECTION. does not, and what it does profess to be. The Gospel is not a system of theology, nor a syntagma of theoretical propositions and conclusions for the enlargement of speculative knowledge, ethical or metaphysical. But it is a history, a series of facts and events related or announced. These do indeed involve, or rather I should say they at the same time are, most important doctrinal truths ; but still facts and declarations of facts. Secondly, of the language. This is a wide subject But the point, to which I chiefly advert, is the ne- cessity of thoroughly understanding the distinction between analogous and metaphorical language. Ana- logies are used in aid of conviction ; metaphors, as means of illustration. The language is analogous, wherever a thing, power, or principle in a higher dignity is expressed by the same thing, power, or principle in a lower but more known form. Such, for instance, is the language of John iii. 6. That which is bom of the flesh, is flesh ; that which is bom of the Spirit, is Spirit. The latter half of the verse contains the fact asserted ; the former half the analo- gous fact, by which it is rendered intelligible. If any man choose to call this metaphorical or figurative, I ask him whether with Hobbes and Bolingbroke he applies the same rule to the moral attributes of the Deity ? Whether he regards the divine justice, for instance, as a metaphorical term, a mere figure of speech ? If he disclaims this, then I answer, neither do I regard the phrase born again, or spiritual life, as a figure or metaphor. I have only to add, that these analogies are the material, or (to speak chemi- cally) the base, of symbols and symbolical expres- sions ; the nature of which is always tautegorical, that is, expressing the same subject but with a difference, in contra-distinction from metaphors and similitudes, ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 159 which are always allegorical, that is, expressing a different subject but with a resemblance.* Of metaphorical language, on the other hand, let the following be taken as instance and illustration I am speaking, we will suppose, of an act, which in its own nature, and as a producing and efficient cause, is transcendant ; but which produces sundry effects, each of which is the same in kind with an effect produced by a cause well known and of ordinary occurrence. Now when I characterise or designate this transcendant act, in exclusive reference to these its effects, by a succession of names borrowed from their ordinary causes ; not for the purpose of rendering the act itself, or the manner of the agency, conceivable, but in order to show the nature and magnitude of the benefits received from it, and thus to excite the due admiration, gratitude, and love in the receivers ; in this case I should be rightly described as speaking metaphorically. And in this case to confound the similarity, in respect of the effects relatively to the recipients, with an identity in respect of the causes or modes of causation relatively to the transcendant act or the Divine Agent, is a confusion of metaphor with analogy, and of figurative with literal ; and has been and continues to be a fruitful source of supersti- tion or enthusiasm in believers, and of objections and prejudices to infidels and sceptics. But each of these points is worthy of a separate consideration: and apt occasions will be found of reverting to them severally in the following Aphorisms, or the comments thereto attached. * See the " Statesman's Manual/' p. 230, 2nd edit.- -EcL 160 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM VIII. LEIGHTOH". Faith elevates the soul not only above sense and sensible things, but above reason itself. As reason corrects the errors which sense might occasion, so supernatural faith corrects the errors of natural reason judging accord iug to sense. COMMENT. My remarks on this Aphorism from Leighton can- not be better introduced, or their purport more dis- tinctly announced, than by the following sentence from Harrington, with no other change than is neces- sary to make the words express, without aid of the context, what from the context it is evident was the writer's meaning. " The definition and proper cha- racter of man — that, namely, which should contra- distinguish him from other animals — is to be taken from his reason rather than from his understanding : in regard that in other creatures there may be some- thing of understanding, but there is nothing of reason." Sir Thomas Browne, in his Religio Medici, com- plains, that there are not impossibilities enough in religion for his active faith ; and adopts by choice and in free preference such interpretations of certain texts and declarations of Holy Writ, as place them in irreconcilable contradiction to the demonstrations of science and the experience of mankind, because (says he) " I love to lose myself in a mystery, and 'tis my solitary recreation to pose my apprehension with those involved enigmas and riddles of the Trinity and Incarnation ; " — and because he delights (as thinking it no vulgar part of faith) to believe a ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 161 thing not only above but contrary to reason, and against the evidence of our proper senses. For the worthy knight could answer all the objections of the Devil and reason " with the old resolution he had learnt of Tertullian : Cerium est quia impossibile est. It is certainly true because it is quite impossible ! " Now this I call Ultra-fidianisin.* * There is this advantage in the occasional use of a newly minted term or title, expressing the doctrinal schemes of particular sects or parties, that i fc avoids the inconvenience that presses on either side, whether we adopt the name which the party itself has taken up by which to express its peculiar tenets, or that by which the same party is desig- nated by its opponents. If we take the latter, it most often happens that either the persons are invidiously aimed at in the designation of the principles, or that the name implies some consequence or occasional accompaniment of the prin- ciples denied by the parties themselves, as applicable to them collectively. On the other hand, convinced as I am, that current appellations are never wholly indifferent or inert : and that, when employed to express the characteristic belief or object of a religious confederacy, they exert on the many a great and constant, though insensible, influence ; I cannot but fear that in adopting the former I may be sacri- ficing the interests of truth beyond what the duties of courtesy can demand or justify. I have elsewhere stated my objections to the word Unitarians, as a name which in its proper sense can belong only to the maintainers of the truth impugned by the persons who have chosen it as their designation. For unity or unition, and indistinguishable unicity or sameness, are incompatible terms. We never speak of the unity of attraction, or the unity of repulsion ; but of the unity of attraction and repulsion in each corpuscle. Indeed, the essential diversity of the conceptions, unity and sameness, was among the elementary principles of the old logicians ; and Leibnitz, in his critique on Wissowatius, has ably exposed the sophisms grounded on the confusion of the two terms. But in the exclusive sense, in which the name, 16$ AIDS TO REFLECTION, Again, there is a scheme constructed on the prin ciple of retaining the social sympathies, that attend on the name of believer, at the least possible expen- Unitarian, is appropriated by the Sect, and in which they mean it to be understood, it is a presumptuous boast and an uncharitable calumny. ISTo one of the Churches to which they on this article of the Christian Faith stand opposed, Greek or Latin, ever adopted the term, Trini — or Tri-uni- tarians as their ordinary and proper name : and had it been otherwise, yet unity is assuredly no logical opposite to Tri- unity, which expressly includes it. The triple alliance is a fortiori an alliance. The true designation of their character- istic tenet, and which would simply and inoffensively express a fact admitted on all sides, is Psilanthropism, or the asser- tion of the mere humanity of Christ.* I dare not hesitate to avow my regret that any scheme of doctrines or tenets should be the subject of penal law ihough I can easily conceive, that any scheme, however excellent in itself, may be propagated, and however false or injurious, may be assailed, in a manner and by means that would make the advocate or assailant justly punishable. But then it is the manner, the means, that constitute the crime. The merit or demerit of the opinions themselves depends on their originating and determining causes, which may differ in every different believer, and are certainly known to Him alone, who commanded us, Judge not, lest ye he judged. At all events, in the present state of the law, I do not see where we can begin, or where we can stop, without inconsistency and consequent hardship. Judging by all that we can pre- tend to know or are entitled to infer, who among us will take on himself to deny that the late Dr. Priestley was a good and benevolent man, as sincere in his love, as he was intrepid and indefatigable in his pursuit, of truth ) Now let us construct three parallel tables, the first containing the articles of belief, moral and theological, maintained by the venerable Hooker, as the representative of the Established * See. the second Lay Sermon, p. 367, 2nd edit. — Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. -163 diture of belief; a scheme of picking and choosing Scripture texts for the support of doctrines, that have been learned beforehand from the higher oracle of Church, each article being distinctly lined and numbered ; the second the tenets and persuasions of Lord Herbert, as the representative of the Platonizing Deists ; and the third, those of Dr. Priestley. Let the points, in which the second and third agree with or differ from the first, be considered as to the comparative number modified by the comparative weight and importance of the several points — and let any competent and upright man be appointed the arbiter, to decide according to his best judgment, without any reference to the truth of the opinions, which of the two differed from the first more widely. I say this, well aware that it would be abundantly more prudent to leave it unsaid. But I say it in the conviction, that the adoption of admitted mis- nomers in the naming of doctrinal systems, if only they have been negatively legalised, is but an equivocal proof of liberality towards the persons who dissent from us. On the contrary, I more than suspect that the former liberality does in too many men arise from a latent pre-disposition to transfer their reprobation and intolerance from the doctrines to the doctors, from the belief to the believers. Indecency, abuse, scoffing on subjects dear and awful to a multitude of our fellow-citizens, appeals to the vanity, appetites, and malignant passions of ignorant and incompetent judges — these are flagrant overt-acts, condemned by the law written in the heart of every honest man, Jew, Turk, and Christian. These are points respecting which the humblest honest man feels it his duty to hold himself infallible, and dares not hesitate in giving utterance to the verdict of his conscience in the jury-box as fearlessly as by his fireside. It is far otherwise with respect to matters of faith and inward con- viction : and with respect to these I say — Tolerate no belief that you judge false and of injurious tendency : and arraign no believer. The man is more and other than his belief: and God only knows, how small or how large a part of him the belief in question mav be, for good or for evil. Resist u 2 164 AIDS TO REFLECTION common sense ; which, as applied to the truths of religion, means the popular part of the philosophy every false doctrine: and call no man heretic. The false doctrine does not necessarily make the man a heretic ; but an evil heart can make any doctrine heretical. Actuated by these principles, I have objected to a false and deceptive designation in the case of one system. Per- suaded that the doctrines, enumerated in pp. 145 — 6, are not only essential to the Christian religion, but those which contra-distinguish the religion as Christian, I merely repeat this persuasion in another form, when I assert, that (in my sense of the word, Christian) Unitarianism is not Christian- ity. But do I say, that those who call themselves Unitarians are not Christians ? God forbid ! I would not think, much less promulgate, a judgment at once so presumptuous and so uncharitable.* Let a friendly antagonist retort on my scheme of faith in the like manner : I shall respect him all the more for his consistency as a reasoner, and not confide the less in his kindness towards me as his neighbour and fellow- Christian. This latter and most endearing name I scarcely know how to withhold even from my friend, Hyman Hurwitz, as often as I read what every reverer of Holy Writ and of the English Bible ought to read, his admirable Ym- dicicB HebraiccE. It has trembled on the verge, as it were, of my lips, every time I have conversed with that pious, learned, strong-minded, and single-hearted Jew, an Israelite indeed, and without guile — Citjiis cur a sequi naturam, legibus uti, Et mentem vitiis, or a negare dolis: Virtutes opibus, verum pr&ponere falso, Nil vacuum sensu dicer e, nil facer e. Post obitum vivam secum,f secum requiescam, Nee fiat melior sors mea sorte sua/f From a poem of Hildcbert on his Master, the persecuted Berengarius. "See Table Talk," p. 15b*, 2nd edit.— JEtf.. I do not answer for the corrupt Latin. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 165 in fashion. Of course, the scheme differs at different times and in different individuals in the number of Under the same feelings I conclude this aid to reflection by applying the principle to another misnomer not less inappropriate and far more influential. Of those, whom I have found most reason to respect and value, many have been members of the Church of Rome ; and certainly I did not honour those the least, who scrupled even in common p?rlance to call our Church a reformed Church. A similar scruple would nob, methinks, disgrace a Protestant as to the use of the words, Catholic or Roman Catholic ; and if (tacitly at least, and in thought) he remembered that the Romish anti-Catholic Church would more truly express the fact. Romish, to mark that the corruptions in discipline, doctrine, and practice do. for the larger part, owe both their origin and perpetuation to the Romish Court, and the local tribunals of the City of Rome ; and neither are or ever have been Catholic, that is, universal, throughout the Roman Empire, or even in the whole Latin or Western Church — and anti- Catholic, because no other Church acts on so narrow and excommunicative a principle, or is characterised by such a jealous spirit of monopoly. Instead of a Catholic (universal) spirit, it may be truly described as a spirit of particularism counterfeiting Catholicity by a negative totality, and heretical self-circumscription — in the first instances cutting off, and since then cutting herself off from, all the other members of Christ's body. For the rest, I think as that man of true catholic spirit and apostolic zeal, Richard Baxter, thought ; and my readers will thank me for conveying my reflections in his own words, in the following golden passage from his Life, " faithfully published from his own original MSS. by Matthew Silvester, 1696." " My censures of the Papists do much differ from what they were at first. I then thought that their errors in the doctrines of faith were their most dangerous mistakes. But now I am assured that their misexpressions and misunder- standing of us, with our mistakings of them, and inconvenient expressing of our own opinions, have made the difference in 166 AIDS TO KEFLECTION. articles excluded ; but, it may always be recognised by this permanent character, that its object is to draw religion down to the believer's intellect, instead of raising his intellect up to religion. And this extreme I call Minimi-fidianism. Now if there be one preventive of both these ex- tremes more efficacious than another, and preliminary to all the rest, it is the being made fully aware of the diversity of Reason and the Understanding. And this is the more expedient, because though there is no want of authorities ancient and modern for the distinc- tion of the faculties, and the distinct appropriation of the terms, yet our best writers too often confound the one with the other. Even Lord Bacon himself, most points appear much greater than it is ; and that in some it is next to none at all. But the great and unreconcileable differences lie in their Church tyranny ; in the usurpations of their hierarchy, and priesthood, under the name of spiritual authority exercising a temporal lordship ; in their corrup- tions and abasement of God's worship; but above all in their systematic befriending of ignorance and vice. "At first I thought that Mr. Perkins well proved that a Papist cannot go beyond a reprobate ; but now I doubt not that God hath many sanctified ones among them, who have received the true doctrine of Christianity so practically, that their contradictory errors prevail not against them, to hinder their love of God and their salvation : but that their errors are like a conquerable dose of poison, which a healthful nature doth overcome. And I can never believe that a man may not be saved by that religion, which doth but bring him to the true love of God and to a heavenly mind and life: nor that God will ever cast a soul into hell that truly loveth him. Also at first it would disgrace any doctrine with me, if I did but hear it called Popery and anti-Christian ; but I have long learned to be more impartial, and to know that Satan can use even the names of Popery and Antichrist, to bring a truth into suspicion and discredit." — Baxter's Life, Part I. p. 131. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 167 who in his Novum Organum has so incomparably set forth the nature of the difference, and the unfitness of the latter faculty for the objects of the former, does nevertheless in sundry places use the term reason where he means the understanding, and sometimes, though less frequently, understanding for reason.* In consequence of thus confounding the two terms, or rather of wasting both words for trie expression of one and the same faculty, he left himself no appropriate term for the other and higher gift of reason, and was thus under the necessity of adopting fantastical and mystical phrases, for example, the dry light (lumen siccum), the lucific vision, and the like, meaning thereby nothing more than reason in contradistinction from the understanding. Thus too in the preceding Aphorism, by reason Leighton means the human understanding, the explanation annexed to it being (by a noticeable coincidence) word for word, the very definition which the founder of the Critical Philosophy gives of the understanding — namely, "the faculty judging according to sense." ON THE DIFFERENCE IN KIND OF REASON AND THE UNDERSTANDING. SCHEME OF THE ARGUMENT. On the contrary, Reason is the power of universal and necessary convictions, the source and substance of truths above sense, and having their evidence in themselves. Its presence is always marked by the necessity of the position affirmed : this necessity being conditional, when a truth of reason is applied * See the Friend, I. pp. 20G—217 ; III. Essays VIII. and [X. 3rd edit.— Ed. 16*8 AIDS TO REFLECTION. to facts of experience, or to the rules and maxims of the understanding; but absolute, when the subject matter is itself the growth or offspring of reason. Hence arises a distinction in reason itself, derived from the different mode of applying it, and from the objects to which it is directed : accordingly as we consider one and the same gift, now as the ground of formal principles, and now as the origin of ideas. Contemplated distinctively in reference to formal (or abstract) truth, it is the Speculative Reason ; but in reference to actual (or moral) truth, as the fountain of ideas and the light of the conscience, we name it the Practical Reason. Whenever by self-subjection to this universal light, the will of the individual, the particular will, has become a will of reason, the man is regenerate : and reason is then the spirit of the regenerated man, whereby the person is capable of a quickening intercommunion with the Divine Spirit. And herein consists the mystery of Redemption, that this has been rendered possible for us. And so it is written ; the first man Adam was made a living soul, the last Adam a quickening Spirit. (1 Cor. xv. 45.) We need only compare the passages in the writings of the Apostles Paul and John, concerning the Spirit and spiritual gifts, with those in the Proverbs and in the Wisdom of Solomon respecting Reason, to be convinced that the terms are synonymous.' 1 " In this at once most comprehensive and most appropriate acceptation of the word, Reason is pre-eminently spiritual, and a spirit, even our spirit, through an. effluence of the same grace by which we are privileged to say, Our Father ! On the other hand, the judgments of the Under- standing are binding only in relation to the objects * See Wisd. of Sol. c. vii. 22, 23, 27.- j5& ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 109 of our senses, which we reflect under the forms of the understanding. It is, asLeighton rightly defines it, " the faculty judging according to sense." Hence we add the epithet human without tautology : and speak of the human understanding in disjunction from that of beings higher or lower than man. But there is, in this sense, no human reason. There neither is nor can be but one reason, one and the same ; even the light that lighteth every man's in- dividual understanding (discursus), and thus maketh xt a reasonable understanding, discourse of reason — one only, yet manifold : it goeth through all under- standing, and remaining in itself regenerateth all other powers. The same writer calls it likewise an influence from the Glory of the Almighty, this being one of the names of the Messiah, as the Logos, or co-eternal Filial Word. And most noticeable for its coincidence is a fragment of Heraclitus, as I have indeed already noticed elsewhere ; — " To discourse rationally it behoves us to derive strength from that which is common to all men : for all human understandings are nourished by the one Divine Word." Beasts, I have said, partake of understanding. If any man deny this, there is a ready way of settling the question. Let him give a careful perusal to Hiiber's two small volumes on bees and ants (espe- cially the latter), and to Eirby and Spence's Intro- duction to Entomology : and one or other of two things must follow. He will either change his opinion as irreconcileable with the facts ; or he must deny the facts ; which yet I cannot suppose, inasmuch as the denial would be tantamount to the no less extravagant than uncharitable assertion, that Hiiber, and the several eminent naturalists, French and English, Swiss, German, and Italian, by whom 170 AIDS TO REFLECTION. Hiiber's observations and experiments have been repeated and confirmed, have all conspired to impose a series of falsehoods and fairy-tales on the world. I see no way, at least, by which he can get out of this dilemma, but by over-leaping the admitted rules and fences of all legitimate discussion, and either trans- ferring to the word, Understanding, the definition already appropriated to Keason, or defining under- standing in genere by the specific and accessional perfections which the human understanding derives from its co-existence with reason and free-will in the same individual person ; in plainer words, from its being exercised by a self-conscious and responsible feature. And, after all, the supporter of Harringtons position would have a right to ask him, by what other name he would designate the faculty in the instances referred to ? If it be not understanding, what is it ? In no former part of this Volume have I felt the same anxiety to obtain a patient attention. For I do not hesitate to avow, that on my success in establishing the validity and importance of the dis- tinction between Reason and the Understanding, rest my hopes of carrying the Reader along with me through all that is to follow. Let the student but clearly see and comprehend the diversity in the things themselves, and the expediency of a correspon- dent distinction and appropriation of the words will follow of itself. Turn back for a moment to the Aphorism, and having re-perused the first paragraph of this Comment thereon, regard the two following narratives as the illustration. I do not say proof: for I take these from a multitude of facts equally striking for the one only purpose of placing my meaning out of all doubt. I. Huber put a dozen humble-bees under a bell- ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 171 glass aloDg with a comb of about ten silken cocoons so unequal in height as not to be capable of stand- ing steadily. To remedy this, two or three of the humble-bees got upon the comb, stretched themselves over its edge, and with their heads downwards fixed their forefeet on the table on which the comb stood, and so with their hind feet kept the comb from falling. When these were weary others took their places. In this constrained and painful posture, fresh bees relieving their comrades at intervals, and each working in its turn, did these affectionate little insects support the comb for nearly three days : at the end of which they had prepared sufficient wax to build pillars with. But these pillars having acciden- tally got displaced, the bees had recourse again to the same manoeuvre, till Hiiber, pitying their hard case, &c. II. "I shall at present describe the operations of a single ant that I observed sufficiently long to satisfy my curiosity. " One rainy day I observed a laborer digging the ground near the aperture which gave entrance to the ant-hill. It placed in a heap the several fragments it had scraped up, and formed them into small pellets, which it deposited here and there upon the nest. It returned constantly to the same place, and ap- peared to have a marked design, for it labored with ardor and perseverance. I remarked a slight furrow, excavated in the ground in a straight line, represent- ing the plan of a path or gallery. The laborer, the whole of whose movements fell under my immediate observation, gave it greater depth and breadth, and cleared out its borders : and I saw at length, in which I could not be deceived, that it had the inten- tion of establishing an avenue which was to lead from one of the stories to the underground chambers. 172 AIDS TO REFLECTION. This path, which was about two or three inches in length, and formed by a single ant, was opened above and bordered on each side by a buttress of earth its concavity en forme de gouttiere was of the most perfect regularity, for the architect had not left an atom too much. The work of this ant was so well followed and understood, that I could almost to a certainty guess its next proceeding, and the very fragment it was about to remove. At the side of the opening w T here this path terminated, was a second opening to which it was necessary to arrive by some road. The same ant engaged in and executed alone this undertaking. It furrowed out and opened another path, parallel to the first, leaving between each a little wall of three or four lines in height. Those ants who lay the foundation of a wall, chamber, or gallery, from working separately occasion, now and then, a want of coincidence in the parts of the same or different objects. Such examples are of no unfre- quent occurrence, but they by no means embarrass them. What follows proves that the workman, on discovering his error, knew how to rectify it. A wall had been erected with the view of sustaining a vaulted ceiling, still incomplete, that had been pro- jected from the wall of the opposite chamber. The workman who began constructing it, had given it too little elevation to meet the opposite partition upon which it was to rest. Had it been continued on the original plan, it must infallibly have met the wall at about one-half of its height, and this it was necessary to avoid. This state of things very forcibly claimed my attention, when one of the ants arriving at the place, and visiting the works, appeared to be struck by the difficulty which presented itself; but this it as soon obviated, by taking down the ceiling and raising the wall upon which it reposed. It then, in my presence, ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 173 constructed a new ceiling with the fragments of the former one." — Hiiber's Natural History of Ants, pp 38—41. Now I assert, that the faculty manifested in the acts here narrated does not differ in kind from un- derstanding, and that it does so differ from reason. What I conceive the former to he, physiologically considered, will he shown hereafter. In this place I take the understanding as it exists in men, and in exclusive reference to its intelligential functions ; and it is in this sense of the word that I am to prove the necessity of contra-distinguishing it from reason. Premising then, that two or more subjects having the same essential characters are said to fall under the same general definition, I lay it down, as a self- evident truth — fit is, in fact, an identical proposition) — that whatever subjects fall under one and the same general definition are of one and the same kind : consequently, that which does not fall under this definition, must differ in kind from each and all of those that do. Difference in degree does indeed suppose sameness in kind ; and difference in kind precludes distinction from difference of degree. Heterogenea non comparari, ergo nee distingui, pos- sutit. The inattention to this rule gives rise to the numerous sophisms comprised by Aristotle under the head of ixtrafiaais els a\Xo yivos, that is, transition into a new kind, or the falsely applying to X what had been truly asserted of A, and might have been true of X, bad it differed from A in its degree only. The sophistry consists in the omission to notice what not being noticed will be supposed not to exist ; and where the silence respecting the difference in kind is tantamount to an assertion that the difference is merely in degree. But the fraud is especially gross. 174 AIDS TO REFLECTION. where the heterogeneous subject, thus clandestinely slipt in, is in its own nature insusceptible of degree : such as, for instance, certainty or circularity, con. trasted with strength, or magnitude. To apply these remarks for our present purpose, we have only to describe Understanding and Reason, each by its characteristic qualities. The comparison will show the difference. UNDERSTANDING. 1. Understanding is discursive. 2. The Understanding in all its*judgments refers to some other faculty as its ultimate authority. 3. Understanding is the faculty of reflection. REASON. 1. Reason is fixed. 2. The Reason in all its decisions appeals to itself as the ground and substance of their truth. (Heb. vi. 13.) 3. Reason of contem plation. Reason indeed is much nearer to Sense than to Understanding : for Reason (says our great Hooker) is a direct aspect of truth, an inward be- holding, having a similar relation to the intelligible or spiritual, as Sense has to the material or pheno- menal. The result is, that neither falls under the defini- tion of the other. They differ in kind : and had my object been confined to the establishment of this fact, the preceding columns would have superseded all further disquisition. But I have ever in view the especial interest of my youthful readers, whose ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 175 reflective power is to be cultivated, as well as their particular reflections to be called forth and guided. Now the main chance of their reflecting on religious subjects aright, and of their attaining to the contemplation of spiritual truths at all rests on their insight into the nature of this disparity still more than on their conviction of its existence. I now, therefore, proceed to a brief analysis of the Under- standing, in elucidation of the definitions already given. The Understanding, then, considered exclusively as an organ of human intelligence, is the faculty by which we reflect and generalise. Take, for instance, any object consisting of many parts, a house, or a group of houses : and if it be contemplated, as a whole, that is, as many constituting a one, it forms what, in the technical language of psychology, is called a total impression. Among the various com- ponent parts of this, we direct our attention especially to such as we recollect to have noticed in other total impressions. Then, by a voluntary act, we withhold our attention from all the rest to reflect exclusively on these ; and these we henceforward use as common characters, by virtue of which the several objects are referred to one and the same sort." Thus, the whole process may be reduced to three acts, all de- pending on and supposing a previous impression on the senses : first, the appropriation of our attention ; * Accordingly as we attend more or less to the differences, the sort becomes, of course, more or less comprehensive. Hence there arises for the systematic naturalist the necessity of subdividing the sorts into orders, classes, families, &e. : all which, however, resolve themselves for the mere logician into the conception of genus and species, that is, the compre- hending and the comprehended, 170 ATDS TO REFLECTION. second, (and in order to the continuance of the first abstraction, or the voluntary withholding of the atten tion ; and, third, generalisation. And these are the proper functions of the Understanding : and the power of so doing, is what we mean, when we say we possess understanding, or are created with the faculty of understanding/" * It is obvious, that the third function includes the act of comparing one object with another. The act of compariug supposes in the compariDg faculty certain inherent forms, that is, modes of reflecting not referable to the objects reflected on, but pre-determined by the constitution and mechanism of the understanding itself. And under some one or other of these forms, the resemblances and differ- ences must be subsumed in order to be conceivable and a fortiori therefore in order to be comparable. The senses do not compare, but merely furnish the materials for comparison. Were it not so, how could the first comparison have been possible? It would involve the absurdity of measuring a thing by itself. But if we think on some one thing, the length of our own foot, or of our hand and arm from the elbow joint, it is evident that in order to do this, we must have the conception of measure. Now these antecedent and most general conceptions are what is meant by the consti- tuent forms of the understanding : w r e call them constituent because they are not acquired by the understanding, but are implied in its constitution. As rationally might a circle be said to acquire a centre and circumference, as the under- standing to acquire these its inherent forms or ways of conceiving. This is what Leibnitz meant, when to the old adage of the Peripatetics, Nihil in intellectu quod non prius in sensu — there is nothing in the understanding not derived from the senses, or — there is nothing conceived that was not previously perceived, — he replied — prceter intellectum ipsum, except the understanding itself. And here let me remark for once and all : whoever would reflect to any purpose — whoever is in earnest in his pursuit ON SIM RITUAL RELIGION 177 Now when a person speaking to us of any parti- cular object or appearance refers it by means of of self-knowledge, and of one of the principal means to this, an insight into the meaning of the words he uses, and the different meanings properly or improperly conveyed by one and the same word, accordingly as it is used in the schools or the market, — accordingly as the kind or a high degree is intended (for example, heat, weight, and the like, as employed scientifically, compared with the same word used popularly) — whoever, I say, seriously, proposes this as his object, must so far overcome his dislike of pedantry, and his dread of being sneered at as a pedant, as not to quarrel with an uncouth word or phrase, till he is quite sure that some other and more familiar one would not only have expressed the precise meaning with equal clearness, but have been as likely to draw attention to this meaning exclusively. The ordinary language of a philosopher in conversation or popular writings, compared with the language he uses in strict reasoning, is as his watch compared with the chronometer in his observa- tory. He sets the former by the town clock, or even, perhaps by the Dutch clock in his kitchen, not because he believes it right, but because his neighbours and his cook go by it. To afford the reader an opportunity for exercising the forbearance here recommended, I turn back to the phrase, "most general conceptions," and observe, that in strict and severe propriety of language I should have said generalific or generific rather than general, and concipiences or concep- tive acts rather than conceptions. It is an old complaint, that a man of genius no sooner appears, but the host of dunces are up in arms to repel the invading alien. This observation would have made more converts to its truth, I suspect, had it been worded more dispassionately and with a less contemptuous antithesis. For "dunces," let us substitute "the many," or the " ovros Kn(r/j.os " (this world) of the Apostle, and we shall perhaps find no great difficulty in accounting for the fact. To arrive at the root, indeed, and last ground of the problem, it would be necessary to investigate the nature and effects of t-he sens© 178 AIDS TO REFLECTION. some common character to a known class (which he does in giving it a name), we say, that we understand of difference on the human mind where it is not holden in check by reason and reflection. We need not go to the savage tribes of iSTorth America, or the yet ruder natives of the Indian Isles, to learn how slight a degree of difference will, in uncultivated minds, call up a sense of diversity, and inward perplexity and contradiction, as if the strangers were, and yet were not, of the same kind with themselves. Who has not had occasion to observe the effect which the gesticu- lations and nasal tones of a Frenchman produce on our own vulgar ] Here we may see the origin and primary import of our unhindncss. It is a sense of unkind, and not the mere negation but the positive opposite of the sense of kind. Aliena- tion, aggravated now by fear, now by contempt, and not seldom by a mixture of both, aversion, hatred, enmity, are so many successive shapes of its growth and metamorphosis. In applica- tion to the present case, it is sufficient to say, that Pindar's remark on sweet music holds equally true of genius : as many as are not delighted by it are disturbed, perplexed, irritated. The beholder either recognises it as a projected form of his own being, that moves before him with a glory round its head, or recoils from it as from a spectre. But this speculation would lead me too far ; I must be content with haviug referred to it as the ultimate ground of the fact, and pass to the more obvious and proximate causes. And as the first, I would rank the person's not understanding what yet he expects to understand, and as if he had a right to do so. An original mathematical work, or any other that requires peculiar and technical remarks and symbols, will excite no uneasy feelings — not in the mind of a competent reader, for he understands it; and not with others, because they neither expect nor are expected to understand it. The second place we may assign to the misunderstanding, which is almost sure to follow in cases where the incompetent person, finding no outward marks (diagrams, arbitrary signs, and the like) to inform him at first sight, that the subject is one which he does not pre- tend to understand, and to be ignorant of which does not ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 179 him; that is, we understand his words. The name of a thing, in the original sense of the word name, detract from his estimation as a man of abilities generally, will attach some meaning to what he hears or reads ; and as he is out of humour with the author, it will most often be such a meaning as he can quarrel with and exhibit in a ridiculous or offensive point of view. But above all, the whole world almost of minds, as far as we regard intellectual efforts, may be divided into two classes of the busy-indolent and lazy-indolent. To both alike all thinking is painful, and all attempts to rouse them to think, whether in the re- examination of their existing convictions, or for the reception of new light, are irritating. u It may all be very deep and clever ; but really one ought to be quite sure of it before one wrenches one's brain to find out what it is. I take up a book as a companion, with whom I can have an easy cheerful chit-chat on what we both know beforehand, or else matters of fact. In our leisure hours we have a right to relaxation and amusement." Well ! but in their studious hours, when their bow is to be bent, when they are apud Musas, or amidst the Muses? Alas ! it is just the same. The same craving for amusement, that is, to be away from the Muses ; for relaxation, that is, the unbending of a bow which in fact had never been strung ! There are two ways of obtaining their applause. The first is : enable them to reconcile in one and the same occupation the love of sloth and the hatred of vacancy. Gratify indo- lence, and yet save them from ennui — in plain English, from themselves. For, spite of their antipathy to dry reading, the keeping company with themselves is, after all, the in- sufferable annoyance : and the true secret of their dislike to a work of thought and inquiry lies in its tendency to make them acquainted with their own permanent being. The other road to their favor is, to introduce to them their owe thoughts and predilections, tricked out in the fine language, in which it would gratify their vanity to express them ii? their own conversation, and with which they can imagine themselves showing off: and this (as has been elsewhere n 2 180 AIDS TO KEFLECTION. (nomen, vovfievov, to intelligibile, id quod intelllgiturj expresses that which is understood in an appearance, that which we place (or make to stand) under it, as the condition of its real existence, and in proof that it is not an accident of the senses, or affection of the individual, not a phantom or apparition, that is, an appearance which is only an appearance. (See Gen. ii. 19, 20, and in Psalm xx. 1, and in many other places of the Bible, the identity of nomen with numen, remarked) is the characteristic difference between the second- rate writers of the last two or three generations, and the same class under Elizabeth and the Stuarts. In the latter we find the most far-fetched and singular thoughts in the simplest and most native language ; in the former, the most obvious and commonplace thoughts in the most far-fetched and motley language. But lastly, and as the she qua non of their patronage, a sufficient arc must be left for the reader's mind to oscillate in — freedom of choice, To make the shifting cloud be what you please, save only where the attraction of curiosity determines the line of motion. The attention must not be fastened down : and this every work of genius, not simply narrative, must do before it can be justly appreciated. In former times a popular work meant one that adapted the results of studious meditation or scientific research to the capacity of the people, presenting in the concrete, by instances and examples, what had been ascertained in the abstract and by discovery of the law. Now, on the other hand, that is a popular w r ork which gives back to the people their own errors and prejudices, and flatters the many by creating them, under the title of the public, into a supreme and inappellable tribunal of intellectual excellence. P.S. In a continuous w r ork, the frequent insertion and length of notes would need an apology : in a book like this, of aphorisms and detached comments none is necessary, it being understood beforehand that the sauce and the garnish are to occupy the greater part of the dish. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 181 that is, invisible power and presence, the nomen sub- stantivum of all real objects, and the ground of their reality, independently of the affections of sense in the percipient). In like manner, in a connected succession of names, as the speaker passes from one to the other, we say that we understand his discourse, discursio intdlectus, discursus, his passing from one thing to another. Thus, in all instances, it is words, names, or, if images, yet images used as words or names, that are the only and exclusive subjects of understanding. In no instance do we understand a thing in itself; but only the name to which it is re- ferred. Sometimes indeed, when several classes are recalled conjointly, we identify the words with the object — though by courtesy of idiom rather than in strict propriety of language. Thus we may say that we understand sl rainbow, when recalling successively the several names for the several sorts of colours, we know that they are to be applied to one and the same phcenomenon, at once distinctly and simulta- neously ; but even in common speech we should not say this of a single colour. No one would say he understands red or blue. He sees the colour, and had seen it before in a vast number and variety of objects ; and he understands the word red, as referring his fancy or memory to this his collective experience. If this be so, and so it most assuredly is — if the proper functions of the understanding be that of ge- neralising the notices received from the senses in order to the construction of names : of referring particular notices, that is, impressions or sensations, to their proper names; and, vice versa, names to their cor- respondent class or kind of notices — then it follows of necessity, that the Understanding is truly and ac- curately defined in the words of Leighton and Kant, a facultv iudsfincr according to sense 182 AIDS TO INFLECTION. Now whether in defining the speculative Reason, — that is, the reason considered abstractedly as an in- tellective power) — we call it " the source of necessary and universal principles, according to which the no* tices of the senses are either affirmed or denied ; " or describe it as " the power by which we are enabled to draw from particular and contingent appearances universal and necessary conclusions :"* it is equally * Take a familiar illustration. My sight and touch convey to me a certain impression, to which my understanding applies its preconceptions (conceptus antecedentes et generalis- sv/ui) of quantity and relation, and thus refers it to the class and name of three-cornered bodies — we will suppose it the iron of a turf-spade. It compares the sides, and finds that any two measured as one are greater than the third ; and according to a law of the imagination, there arises a pre- sumption that in all other bodies of the same figure (that is, three-cornered and equilateral) the same proportion exists. After this, the senses have been directed successively to a number of three-cornered bodies of unequal sides — and in these too the same proportion has been found without ex- ception, till at length it becomes a fact of experience, that in all triangles hitherto seen, the two sides together are greater than 'the third: and there will exist no ground or analogy for anticipating an exception to a rule, gene- ralised from so vast a number of particular instances. So far and no farther could the understanding carry us : and as far as this "the faculty, judging according to sense," conducts many of the inferior animals, if not in the same, yet in instances analogous and fully equivalent. The reason supersedes the whole process, and on the first conception presented by the understanding in consequence of the first sight of a triangular figure, of whatever sort it might chance to be, it affirms with an assurance incapable of future increase, with a perfect certainty, that in all pos- sible triangles any two of the inclosing lines will and must be greater than the third. In short, understanding in its highest form of experience remains commensurate with the ON SPIKITUAL RELIGION. 183 evident that the two definitions differ in their essential characters, and consequently the subjects differ in hind. experimental notices of the senses from which it is gene- ralised. Keason, on the other hand, cither predetermines experience, or avails itself of a past experience to supersede its necessity in all future time ; and affirms truths which no sense could perceive, nor experiment verify, nor experience confirm. Yea, this is the test and character of a truth so affirmed, that in its own proper form it is inconceivable. For to conceive is a function of the understanding, which can be exercised only on subjects subordinate thereto. And yet to the forms of the understanding, all truth must be reduced, that is to be fixed as an object of reflection, and to be rendered expressible. And here we have a second test and sign of a truth so affirmed, that it can come forth out of the moulds of the understanding only in the disguise of two contradictory conceptions, each of which is partially true, and the conjunction of both conceptions becomes the repre- sentative or expression (the exponent) of a truth beyond conception and inexpressible. Examples : Before Abraham was, I am. — God is a circle, the centre of which is every- where, and circumference nowhere. — The soul is all in every part. If this appear extravagant, it is an extravagance which no man can indeed learn from another, but which (were this possible), I might have learnt from Plato, Kepler, and Bacon ; from Luther, Hooker, Pascal, Leibnitz, and Fenelon. But in this last paragraph I have, I see, unwittingly over- stepped my purpose, according to which we were to take reason as a simply intellectual power. Yet even as such, and with all the disadvantage of a technical and arbitrary abstraction, it has been made evident : — 1. That there is an intuition or immediate beholding, accompanied by a con- viction of the necessity and universality of the truth so beholden not derived from the senses, which intuition, when it is construed by pure sense, gives birth to the science of 18 i AIDS TO REFLECTION. The dependence of the Understanding on the re- presentations of the seuses, and its consequent pos- mathematics, and when applied to objects supersensnous or spiritual is the organ of theology and philosophy : — and 2. That there is likewise a reflective and discursive faculty, or mediate apprehension which, taken by itself and unin- fluenced by the former, depends on the senses for the materials on which it is exercised, and is contained within the sphere of the senses. And this faculty it is, which in generalising the notices of the senses constitutes sensible experience, aud gives rise to maxims or rules which may become more and more general, but can never be raised into universal verities, or beget a consciousness of absolute certainty ; though they may be sufficient to extinguish all doubt. (Putting revelation out of view, take our first pro- genitor in the 50th or 100th year of his existence. His experience would probably have freed him from all doubt, as the sun sank in the horizon, that it would re-appear the next morning. But compare this state of assurance with that which the same man would have had of the 47th pro- position of Euclid, supposing him like Pythagoras to have discovered the demonstration.) jSTow is it expedient, I ask, or conformable to the laws and purposes of language, to call two so altogether disparate subjects by one and the same name ? Or, having two names in our language, should we call each of the two diverse subjects by both — that is, by either name, as caprice might dictate ? If not, then as we have the two words, reason and understanding (as indeed what language of cultivated man has not ]), — what should prevent us from appropriating the former to the power dis- tinctive of humanity ? We need only place the derivatives from the two terms in opposition (for example, " A and B are both rational beings; but there is no comparison between them in point of intelligence," or " She always concludes rationally, though not a woman of much under- standing ") to see that we cannot; reverse the order — that is, call the higher gift understanding, and the lower reason. YV licit should prevent us? I asked. Alas! that which has ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 183 teriority thereto, as contrasted with the independence and antecedency of Reason, are strikingly exemplified in the Ptolemaic System — that truly wonderful product and highest hoast of the faculty, judging according to the senses — compared with the Newtonian, as the offspring of a yet higher power, arranging, correcting, and annulling the representations of the senses ac- cording to its own inherent laws and constitutive ideas. APHORISM IX. In wonder all philosophy hegan ; in wonder it ends : and admiration fills up the interspace. But the first wonder is the offspring of ignorance : the last is the parent of adoration. The first is the birth- throe of our knowledge : the last is its euthanasy and apotheosis. prevented us — the cause of this confusion in the terms — is only too obvious ; namely, inattention to the momentous distinction in the things, and generally, to the duty and habit recommended in the fifth introductory Aphorism of this volume. But the cause of this, and of all its lamentable effects and subcauses, false doctrine, blindness of heart, and contempt of the word, is best declared by the philosophic Apostle : they did not UJ:e to retain God in their knowledge, (Rom. i. 23,) and though they could not extinguish the light that lighteth every man, and which shone in the darkness ; yet because the darkness could not comprehend the light, they refused to bear witness of it and worshipped, instead, the shaping mist, which the light had drawn upward from the ground (that is, from the mere animal nature and instinct), and which that light alone had made visible, that is, by superinducing on the animal instinct the principle of self- consciousness. 186 AIDS TO REFLECTION. SEQUELS : OR THOUGHTS SUGGESTED BY THE PREOEDESQ APHORISM. As in respect of the first wonder we are all on the same level, how comes it that the philosophic mind should, in all ages, he the privilege of a few ? The most obvious reason is this. The wonder takes place before the period of reflection, and (with the great mass of mankind) long before the individual is ca- pable of directing his attention freely and consciously to the feeling, or even to its exciting causes. Sur- prise (the form and dress which the wonder of igno- rance usually puts on) is worn away, if not precluded, by custom and familiarity. So is it with the objects of the senses, and the ways and fashions of the world around us ; even as with the beat of our own hearts, which we notice only in moments of fear and pertur- bation. But with regard to the concerns of our inward being, there is yet another cause that acts in concert with the power in custom to prevent a fair and equal exertion of reflective thought. The great funda- mental truths and doctrines of religion, the existence and attributes of God and the life after death, are in Christian countries taught so early, under such cir- cumstances, and in such close and vital association with whatever makes or marks reality for our infant minds, that the words ever after represent sensations, feeliDgs, vital assurances, sense of reality — rather than thoughts, or any distinct conception. Associated, I had almost said identified, with the parental voice, look, touch, with the living warmth and pressure of the mother, on whose lap the child is first made to kneel, within whose palms its little hands are folded, and the motion of whose eyes its eyes follow and imitate — (yea, what the blue sky is to the mother, the mother's upraised eyes and brow are to the child, ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 187 the type and symbol of an invisible heaven ! ) — from within and without these great first truths, these good and gracious tidings, these holy and humanising spells, in the preconformity to which our very huma- nity may be said to consist, are so infused that it were but a tame and inadequate expression to say, we all take them for granted. At a later period, in youth or early manhood, most of us, indeed, (in the higher and middle classes at least) read or hear certain proofs of these truths — which we commonly listen to, when we listen at all, with much the same feelings as a popular prince on his coronation day, in the centre of a fond and rejoicing nation, may be supposed tc hear the champion's challenge to all the non-existents, that deny or dispute his rights and royalty. In fact, the order of proof is most often reversed or trans- posed. As far at least as I dare judge from the goings on in my own mind, when with keen delight I first read the works of Derham, Nieuwentiet, and Lyonet, I should say that the full and life-like conviction of a gracious Creator is the proof (at all events, performs the office and answers all the purpose of a proof) of the wisdom and benevolence in the construction of the creature. Do I blame this ? Do I wish it to be otherwise ? God forbid ! It is only one of its accidental, but too frequent, consequences, of which I complain, and against which I protest. I regret nothing that tends to make the light become the life of men, even as the life in the eternal Word is their only and single true light. But I do regret, that in after years — when by occasion of some new dispute on some old heresy, or any other accident, the attention has for the first time been distinctly attracted to the superstructure raised on these fundamental truths, or to truths of later revelation supplemental of these and not less 188 AIDS TO REFLECTION. important — all the doubts and difficulties, that can not but arise where the understanding, the mind of the fleshy is made the measure of spiritual things all the sense of strangeness and seeming contradiction in terms ; all the marvel and the mystery, that be- long equally to both, are first thought of and applied in objection exclusively to the latter. I would disturb no man's faith in the great articles of the (falsely so called) religion of nature. But before a man re- jects, and calls on other men to reject, the revelations of the Gospel and the religion of all Christendom, I would have him place himself in the state and under all the privations of a Simonides, when in the fortieth day of his meditation the sage and philosophic poet abandoned the problem in despair. Ever and anon he seemed to have hold of the truth ; but when he asked himself what he meant by it, it escaped from him, or resolved itself into meanings, that destroyed each other. I would have the sceptic, while yet a sceptic only, seriously consider whether a doctrine, of the truth of which a Socrates could obtain no other assurance than what he derived from his strong wish that it should be true; and which Plato found a mystery hard to discover, and when discovered, com- municable only to the fewest of men ; can, conso- nantly with history or common sense, be classed among the articles, the belief of which is insured to all men by their mere common sense ? Whether with- out gross outrage to fact, they can be said to consti- tute a religion of nature, or a natural theology ante- cedent to revelation, or superseding its necessity?* * A dditional note. — N.B. These remarks on a religion of Nature apply to the Belief in the existence, the personality and the providence of a one only God, and to the Belief of a Future State in connection with and dependence, on the Belief ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 18ft Yes I in pretention (for there is little chance, I fear of a cure) of the pugnacious dogmatism of partial reflection, I would prescribe to every man who feels a commencing alienation from the Catholic faith, and whose studies and attainments authorise him to argue on the subject at all, a patient and thoughtful perusal of the arguments and representations which Bayle supposes to have passed through the mind of Simo- nides. Or I should be fully satisfied if I could in- duce these eschewers of mystery to give a patient, manly, and impartial perusal to the single treatise of Pomponatius, De Fato* When they have fairly and satisfactorily overthrown the objections and cleared away the difficulties urged by this sharp-witted Italian against the doctrines which they profess to retain, then let them commence their attack on those which they reject. As far as the supposed irrationality of the latter is the ground of argument, I am much deceived if, on reviewing their forces, they would not find the ranks woefully thinned by the success of their own fire in the preced- ing engagement — unless, indeed, by pure heat of con- troversy, and to storm the lines of their antagonists, of God as a moral Judge — and not to the mere assurance of a Soul that survives the Body. This latter is, I doubt not, natural to man. (See Aphorism xxiii. and Comment.) It may therefore be called a "' Faith of Xature/' but it is not a Religion of Xature— or rather, it is not Religion at all. * The philosopher, whom the Inquisition would have burnt alive as an Atheist, had net Leo X. and Cardinal Bembo decided that the work might be formidable to those eemi-pagan Christians who regarded revelation as a mere make-weight to their boasted religion of nature ; but con- tained nothing dangerous to the Catholic Church or offensive to a true believer. (He was born at Mantua in 1462 and died in 1525. — Ed.) 190 AIDS TC REFLECTION. they can bring to life again the arguments which they had themselves killed off in the defence of their own positions. In vain shall we seek for any other mode of meeting the broad facts of the scientific Epicurean, or the requisitions and queries of the all-analysing Pyrrhonist, than by challenging the tribunal to which they appeal, as incompetent to try the question. In order to non-suit the infidel plaintiff, we must remove the cause from the faculty, that judges according to sense, and whose judgments, therefore, are valid only on objects of sense, to the superior courts of conscience and intuitive reason. The words I speak unto you, are Spirit, and such only are life, that is, have an inward and actual power abiding in them. But the same truth is at once shield and bow. The shaft of Atheism glances aside from it to strike and pierce the breast-plate of the heretic. Well for the latter, if, plucking the weapon from the wound, he re- cognises an arrow from his own quiver, and abandons a cause that connects him with such confederates ! An insight into the proper functions and subaltern rank of the understanding may not, indeed, disarm the Psilan thro pis t of his metaphorical glosses, or of his versions fresh from the forge, with no other stamp than the private mark of the individual manufacturer ; but it will deprive him of the only rational pretext for having recourse to tools so liable to abuse, and of such perilous example. COMMENT. Since the preceding pages were composed, and dur- ing an interim of depression and disqualification, I heard with a delight and an interest which I might without hyperbole call medicinal, that the contradis- tinction of the understanding from reason, — for which ON SPIRITUAL KELIGION. 191 during twenty years I have been contending, casting my bread upon the waters with a perseverance which in the existing state of the public taste, nothing but the deepest conviction of its importance could have inspired — has been lately sanctioned by the present distinguished Professor of Anatomy, in the course of lectures given by him at the Royal College of Surgeons, on the zoological part of natural history ; and, if I am rightly informed, in one of the eloquent and impressive introductory discourses.* In explaining the nature of Instinct, as deduced from the actions and tendencies of animals successively presented to the observation of the comparative physiologist in the ascending scale of organic life — or rather, I should have said, in an attempt to determine that precise import of the term, which is required by the facts f — the professor ex- * The allusion is to Mr. Green ; and the passage to which the Author refers, will be found in an Appendix, reprinted from the "Vital Dynamics." — Ed. f The word, Instinct, brings together a number of facts into one class by the assertion of a common ground, the nature of which ground it determines negatively only, — that is, the word does not explain what this common ground is ; but simply indicates that there is such a ground, and that it is different in kind from that in which the responsible and consciously voluntary actions of men originate. Thus, in its true and primary import, Instinct stands in antithesis to Reason ; and the perplexity and contradictory statements into which so many meritorious naturalists, and popular writers on natural history (Priscilla "Wakefield, Kirby, Spence, Htiber, and even Reimarus) have fallen on this subject, arise wholly from their taking the word in opposition to Understanding. I notice this, because I would- not lose any opportunity of impressing on the mind of my Youthful readers the important truth that language as the embodied and articulated spirit of the race, as the growth and emana- tion of a people, and not the work of any individual wit or 1 ( J2 AIDS TO REFLECTION plained the nature of what I have elsewhere cafled the adaptive power, that is, the faculty of adapting means to a proximate end. I mean here a relative end — that which relatively to one thing is an end, though rela- tively to some other it is in itself a mean. It is to be regretted that we have no single word to express those ends, that are not the end : for the distinction between those and an end in the proper sense of the term is an important one. The Professor, I say, not only explained, first, the nature of the adaptive power in genere, and, secondly, the distinct character of the same power as it exists specifically and exclusively in the hu- man being, and acquires the name of understanding ; but he did it in a way which gave the whole sum and substance of my convictions, of all I had so long wished, and so often, but with such imperfect success, attempted to convey, free from all semblance of para- doxy, and from all occasion of offence — omnem of- fendiculi ansam pracidens.* It is, indeed for the will, is often inadequate, sometimes deficient, but never false or delusive. We have only to master the true origin and original import of any native and abiding word, to find in it, if not the solution of the facts expressed by it, yet a finger-mark pointing to the road on which this solution is to be sought. * Ntquc quicquam addubito, quin ea candidis omnibus fan at satis. Quid autem facias istis qui vel ob ingenii pcrtinaciam sibi satisfieri nolint, vel stupidiores sint quam ut satisf actionem intettigant? Nam quemadmodum Simonides dixit, Thesscdns hebetiores esse quam ut possint a se decipi, ita quosdam vide as stupidiores quam ut placavi queant. Adhuc non mirum est invenire quod calumnietur qui nihil aliud qucerit nisi quo'i calumnietur. (Erasmi Epist. ad Dorpium.) At all events, the paragraph passing through the medium of my own prepos- sessions, if any fault be found with it, the fault probably, and the blame certainly, belongs to the reporter. ON SPIKITUAL RELIGION. 193 fragmentary reader only that I have any scruple. In those who have had the patience to accompany me so far on the up-hill road to manly principles, I can have no reason to guard against that disposition to hasty offence from anticipation of consequences — that faith- less and loveless spirit of fear which plunged Galileo into a prison ; * — a spirit most unworthy of an edu- cated man, who ought to have learnt that the mistakes of scientific men have never injured Christianity, while every new truth discovered by them has either added to its evidence, or prepared the mind for its reception. * And which (I may add) in a more enlightened age, and in a Protestant country, impelled more than one German University to anathematise Fr. Hoffman's discovery of carbonic acid gas, and of its effects on animal life, as hostile to religion and tending to atheism ! Three or four students at the University of Jena, in the attempt to raise a spirit for the discovery of a supposed hidden treasure, were strangled or poisoned by the fumes of the charcoal they had been burning in a close garden-house of a vineyard near Jena, while employed in their magic fumigations and charms. One only was restored to life ; and from his account of the noises and spectres (in his ears and eyes) as he was losing his senses, it was taken for granted that the bad spirit had destroyed them. Frederick Hoffman admitted that it was a very bad spirit that had tempted them, the spirit of avarice and folly; and that a very noxious spirit (gas, or Geist) was the imme- diate cause of their death. But he contended that this latter spirit was the spirit of charcoal, which would have produced the same effect, had the young men been chaunting psalms instead of incantations ; and acquitted the Devil of all direct concern in the business. The theological faculty took the alarm : even physicians pretended to be horror-stricken at Hoffman's audacity. The controversy and its appendages embittered several years of this great and good man's life. 194 AIDS TO REFLECTION. ON INSTINCT IN CONNEXION WITH THE UNDERSTANDING. It is evident that the definition of a genus or class is an adequate definition only of the lowest species of that genus : for each higher species is distinguished from the lower hy some additional character, while the general definition includes only the characters common to all the species. Consequently it describes the lowest only. Now I distinguish a genus or kind of powers under the name of adaptive power, and give as its generic definition — the power of selecting and adapting means to proximate ends ; and as an instance of the lowest species of this genus, I take the stomach of a caterpillar. I ask myself, under what words I can generalise the action of this organ : and I see, that it selects and adapts the appropriate means (that is, the assimilable part of the vegetable congesta) to the proximate end, that is, the growth or reproduction of the insect's body. This we call Vital Power, or vita propria of the stomach ; and this being the lowest species, its definition is the same with the definition of the kind. Well ! from the power of the stomach I pass to the power exerted by the whole animal. I trace it wan- dering from spot to spot, and plant to plant, till it finds the appropriate vegetable ; and again on this chosen vegetable, I mark it seeking out and fixing on the part of the plant, bark, leaf, or petal, suited to its nourishment : or (should the animal have assumed the butterfly form), to the deposition of its eggs, and the sustentation of the future larva. Here I see a power of selecting and adapting means to proximate ends according to circumstances : and this higher species of adaptive power we call Instinct. Lastlv, I reflect on the facts narrated and de- ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 195 scribed in the preceding extracts from Huber, and see a power of selecting and adapting the proper means to the proximate ends, according to varying circumstances. And what shall we call this yet higher species ? We name the former, Instinct : wo must call this Instinctive Intelligence. Here then we have three powers of the same kind ; life, instinct, and instinctive intelligence : the essential characters that define the genus existing equally in all three. But in addition to these, I find one other character common to the highest and lowest : namely, that the purposes are all manifestly predetermined by the peculiar organisation of the animals ; and though it may not be possible to discover any such immediate dependency in all the actions, yet the actions being determined by the purposes, the result is equivalent ; and both the actions and the purposes are all in a necessitated reference to the preservation and continuance of the particular animal or the progeny. There is selection, but not choice ; volition rather than will. The possible know- ledge of a thing, or the desire to have that thing represeutable by a distinct correspondent thought, does not, in the animal, suffice to render the thing an object, or the ground of a purpose. I select and adapt the proper means to the separation of a stone from a rock, which I neither can, nor desire to use for food, shelter, or ornament : because, perhaps, I wish to measure the angles of its primary crystals, or, perhaps, for no better reason than the apparent difficulty of loosening the stone — sit pro ratione voluntas — and thus make a motive out of the absence of all motive, and a reason out of the arbitrary will to act without any reason. Now what is the conclusion from these premisses ? Evidently this : that if I suppose the adaptive power o2 196 ArDS TO REFLECTION. in its highest species, or form of instinctive intelli gence, to co-exist with reason, free will, and self- consciousness, it instantly* becomes Understanding: in other words, that understanding differs indeed from the noblest form of instinct, but not in itself or in its own essential properties, but in consequence of its co- existence with far higher powers of a diverse kind in one and the same subject. Instinct in a rational, responsible, and self-conscious animal, is Understanding. Such I apprehend to be the true view and expo- sition of Instinct ; and in confirmation of its truth, I would merely request my readers, from the numerous well-authenticated instances on record, to recall some one of the extraordinary actions of dogs for the pre- servation of their masters' lives, and even for the avenging of their deaths. In these instances we have the third species of the adaptive power in con- nexion with an apparently moral end — with an end in the proper sense of the word. Here the adaptive power co-exists with a purpose apparently voluntary, and the action seems neither pre-determined by the organisation of the animal, nor in any direct reference to his own preservation, nor to the continuance of his race. It is united with an imposing semblance of gratitude, fidelity, and disinterested love. We not only value the faithful brute; we attribute worth to him. This, I admit, is a problem, of which I have no solution to offer. One of the wisest of uninspired men has not hesitated to declare the dog a great mystery, on account of this dawning of a moral nature, unaccompanied by any the least evidence of reason, in whichever of the two senses we interpret the word — whether as the practical reason, that is, the power of proposing an ultimate end, the deter- minabilitv of the will bv ideas : or as the sciential ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 197 reason, that is, the faculty of concluding universal and necessary truths from particular and contingent appearances. But in a question respecting the pos- session of reason, the absence of all proof is tanta- mount to a proof of the contrary. It is, however, by no means equally clear to me, that the dog may not possess an analogon of words, which I have elsewhere shown to be the proper objects of the "faculty, judging according to sense." But to return to my purpose : I entreat the Reader to reflect on any one fact of this kind, whether occur ring in his own experience, or selected from the numerous anecdotes of the Dog preserved in the writings of zoologists. I will then confidently appeal to him, whether it is in his power not to consider the faculty displayed in these actions as the same in kind with the understanding, however inferior in degree. Or should he even in these instances prefer calling it instinct, and this in ccmtra-distinction from understanding, I call on him to point out the boun- dary between the two, the chasm or partition- wall that divides or separates the one from the other. If he can, he will have done what none before him have been able to do, though many and eminent men have tried hard for it : and my recantation shall be among the first trophies of his success. If he cannot, I must infer that he is controlled by his dread of the con- sequences, by an apprehension of some injury re- sulting to religion or morality from this opinion ; and I shall console myself with the hope, that in the sequel of this Work he will find proofs of the directly contrary tendency. Not only in this view of the Understanding, as differing in degree from Instinct, and in kind from Reason, innocent in its possible influences on the religious character, but it is an in- dispensable preliminary to the removal of the most 198 AIDS TO REFLECTION. formidable obstacles to an intelligent belief of the peculiar doctrines of the Gospel, of the characteristic articles of the Christian Faith, with which the advo- cates of the truth in Christ have to contend ; the evil heart of unbelief alone excepted. REFLECTIONS INTRODUCTORY TO APHORISM X. The most momentous question a man can ask is, Have I a Saviour ? And yet as far as the individua' querist is concerned, it is premature and to no purpose, unless another question has been previously put and answered, (alas ! too generally put after the wounded conscience has already given the answer!) namely, Have I any need of a Saviour? For him who needs none (0 bitter irony of the evil Spirit, whose whispers the proud soul takes for its own thoughts, and knows not how the tempter is scoffing the while !) there is none, as long as he feels no need. On the other hand, it is scarcely possible to have answered this question in the affirmative, and not ask — first, in what the necessity consists — secondly, whence it proceeded — and, thirdly, how far the answer to this second question is or is not contained in the answer to the first. I entreat the intelligent Eeader, who has taken me as his tempo- rary guide on the straight, but yet, from the number of cross roads, difficult way of religious inquiry, to halt a moment, and consider the main points which, in this last division of my Work, have been already offered for his reflection. I have attempted, then, to fix the proper meaning of the words, Nature and Spirit, the one being the antithesis to the other : so that the most general and negative definition of nature is, whatever is not spirit ; and vice versa of spirit, that which is not comprehended in nature ; or ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 199 in the language of our elder divines, that which transcends nature. But Nature is the term in which we comprehend all things that are representable in the forms of time and space, and subjected to the relations of cause and effect : and the cause of the existence of which, therefore, is to be sought for perpetually in something antecedent. The word itself expresses this in the strongest manner possible: Natura, that which is about to be born, that which is always becoming. It follows, therefore, that what- ever originates its own acts, or in any sense contains in itself the cause of its own state, must be spiritual, and consequently supernatural : yet not on that account necessarily miraculous. And such must the responsible Will in us be, if it be at all. A prior step has been to remove all misconceptions from the subject ; to show the reasonableness of a belief in the reality and real influence of a universal and divine Spirit ; the compatibility and possible communion of such a spirit with the spiritual in principle ; and the analogy offered by the most unde- niable truths of natural philosophy. * * It has in its consequences proved no trifling evil to the Christian world, that Aristotle's definitions of Nature are all grounded on the petty and rather rhetorical than philo- sophical antithesis of nature to art — a conception inadequate to the demands even of his philosophy. Hence in the progress of his reasoning, he confounds the natura naturata (that is, the sum total of the facts and phenomena of the senses) with an hypothetical natura notoirans, a Goddess Nature, that has no better claim to a place in any sober system of natural philosophy than the Goddess Multitudo ; yet to which Aristotle not rarely gives the name and attri- butes of the Supreme Being. The result was, that the idea of God thus identified with this hypothetical nature becomes itself but an hypothesis, or at best but a precarious inference 200 AIDS TO REFLECTION. These views of the Spirit, and of the Will as spiritual, form the ground-work of my scheme. Among the numerous corollaries or appendents, the first that presented itself respects the question : — whether there is any faculty in man by which a knowledge of spiritual truths, or of any truths not abstracted from nature, is rendered possible ; and an answer is attempted in the comment on Aphorism VIII. And here I beg leave to remark, that in this comment the only novelty, and if there be merit, the only merit is — that there being two very different meanings, and two different words, I have here and in former works appropriated one meaning to one of the words, and the other to the other — instead of using the words indifferently and by hap-hazard : a confusion, the ill effects of which in this instance are so great and of such frequent occurrence in the works of our ablest philosophers and divines, that I should select it before all others in proof of Hobbes' maxim : that it is a short down-hill passage from errors in words to errors in things. The difference of the Reason from the Understanding, and the imperfec- tion and limited sphere of the latter, have been asserted by many both before and since Lord Bacon.;* from incommensurate premisses and on disputable principles : while in other passages, God is confounded with (and every- where, in Aristotle's genuine works) included in the universe : which most grievous error it is the great and characteristic merit of Plato to have avoided and denounced. * Take one passage among many from the Posthumous Tracts (1660) of John Smith, not the least star in that bright constellation of Cambridge men, the contemporaries of Jeremy Taylor. '* While we reflect on our own idea of Reason, we know that our souls are not it, but only partake of it; and that we have it Kara ficde^v and not kot oixrriiv. Neither can it be called a faculty, but far rathe* ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 201 but still the habit of using reason and understanding as synonymes acted as a disturbing force. Some it led into mysticism, others it set on explaining away a clear difference in kind into a mere superiority in degree : and it partially eclipsed the truth for all. In close connexion with this, and therefore forming the comment on the Aphorism next following, is the subject of the legitimate exercise of the Understand- ing, and its limitation to objects of sense ; with the errors both of unbelief and of misbelief, which result from its extension beyond the sphere of possible ex- perience. Wherever the forms of reasoning appropriate only to the natural world are applied to spiritual realities, it may be truly said, that the more strictly logical the reasoning is in all its parts, the more irrational it is as a whole. To the reader thus armed and prepared, I now ven- ture to present the so-called mysteries of Faith, that is, the peculiar tenets and especial constituents of Christianity,, or religion in spirit and in truth. In right order I must have commenced with the articles of the Trinity and Apostasy, including the question respecting the origin of Evil, and the Incarnation of the Word. And could I have followed this order, some difficulties that now press on me would have been obviated. But the limits of the present Volume rendered it alike impracticable and inexpedient ; for the necessity of my argument would have called forth certain hard though most true sayings, respecting a light, which we enjoy, but the source of which is not in ourselves, nor rightly by any individual to be denominated riiinc" This pure intelligence he then proceeds to contrast with the discursive faculty, that is, the Understanding. (See the notes on this remarkable writer in the Author's "Literary Remains," vol. hi. p. 416. — Ed.) 202 AIDS TO REFLECTION. the hollowness and tricksy sophistry of the so-called "natural theology," "religion of nature," "light of nature," and the like, which a brief exposition could not save from innocent misconceptions, much less protect against plausible misinterpretation. And yet both reason and experience have convinced me, that in the greater number of our Alogi, who feed on the husks of Christianity, the disbelief of the Trinity, the divinity' of Christ included, has its origin and support in the assumed self-evidence of this natural theology, and in their ignorance of the insurmount- able difficulties which on the same mode of reason- ing press upon the fundamental articles of their own remnant of a creed. But, arguments, which would prove the falsehood of a known truth, must themselves be false, and can prove the falsehood of no other position in codem genere. This hint I have thrown out as a spark that may perhaps fall where it will kindle. And worthily might the wisest of men make inquisition into the three momentous points here spoken of, for the pur- poses of speculative insight, and for the formation of enlarged and systematic views of the destination of Man, and the dispensation of God. But the practical Inquirer — (I speak not of those who inquire for the gratification of curiosity, and still less of those who labour as students only to shine as disputants; but of one, who seeks the truth, because he feels the want of it,) — the practical inquirer, I say, hath al- ready placed his foot on the rock, if he have satisfied himself that whoever needs not a Redeemer is more than human. Remove from him the difficulties and objections that oppose or perplex his belief of a cru- cified Saviour ; convince him of the reality of sin, which is impossible without a knowledge of its true nature and inevitable consequences ; and then satisfy OX SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 203 him as to the fact historically, and as to the truth spiritually, of a redemption therefrom by Christ ; do this for him, and there is little fear that he will permit either logical quirks or metaphysical puzzles to contravene the plain dictate of his common sense, that the sinless One who redeemed mankind from sin, must have been more than man ; and that He who brought light and immortality into the world, could not in his own nature have been an inheritor of death and darkness. It is morally impossible that a man with these convictions should suffer the objection of incomprehensibility, and this on a subject of faith, to overbalance the manifest absurdity and contradiction in the notion of a Mediator between God and the hu- man race, at the same infinite distance from God as the race for whom he mediates. The origin of Evil, meanwhile, is a question inter- esting only to the metaphysician, and in a system of moral and religious philosophy. The man of sober mind who seeks for truths that possess a moral and practical interest, is content to be certain, first, that evil must have had a beginning, since otherwise it must either be God, or a co-eternal and co-equal rival of God ; both impious notions, and the latter foolish to boot : — secondly that it could not originate in God ; for if so, it would be at once evil and not evil, or God would be at once God, that is, infinite good- ness, and not God — both alike impossible positions. Instead, therefore, of troubling himself with this barren controversy, he more profitably turns his inquiries to that evil which most concerns himself, and of which he may find the origin. Tbe entire scheme of necessary Faith may be re- duced to two heads ; first the object and occasion, and secondly, the fact and effect, — of our redemption by Christ : and to this view does the order of the 204 AIDS TO KEFLECTION. following Comments correspond. I have begun with Original Sin, and proceeded in the following Aphorism to the doctrine of Redemption. The Comments on the remaining Aphorisms are all subsidiary to these, or written in the hope of making the minor tenets of general belief be believed in a spirit worthy of these. They are, in short, intended to supply a febrifuge against aguish scruples and horrors, the hectic of the soul; — and, in Milton's words, "for servile and thrall-like fear, to substitute that adoptive and cheer- ful boldness, which our new alliance with God re- quires of us as Christians." Not the origin of evil, not the chronology of sin, or the chronicles of the original sinner; but sin originant, underived from without, and no passive link in the adamantine chain of effects, each of which is in its turn an instrument of causation, but no one of them a cause ; — not with sin, inflicted, which would be a calamity : — not with sin (that is, an evil tendency) implanted, for which let the planter be responsible ; — but I begin with original sin. And for this purpose I have selected the Aphorism from the ablest and most formidable antagonist of this doctrine, Bishop Jeremy Taylor, and from the most eloquent work of this most elo- quent of divines.' 1 ' Had I said, of men, Cicero would forgive me, and Demosthenes nod assent ! t * See the notes on J. Taylor, " Literary Remains," iii. pp. 295, 334.— Ed. f It doe? not appear that the Church of England demands the literal understanding of the document contained in the second (from verse 8) and third chapters of Genesis as a point of faith, or regards a different interpretation as affecting the orthodoxy of the interpreter;* divines of the most unimpeachable orthodoxy, and the most averse to the alio* * See Bp. Horsley's Sermon xvi. ; 2 Peter i. 20. 21- —Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 205 APHORISM X. ON ORIGINAL SIN. JEREMY TAYLOR. The question is not whether there be any such thing as original Sin : for it is certain, and confessed on all hands almost. For my part I cannot but con- gorising of Scripture history in general, having from the earliest ages of the Christian Church adopted or permitted it in this instance. And indeed no unprejudiced man can pretend to doubt, that if in any other work of Eastern origin he met with trees of life and of knowledge ; or talking and conversable snakes, Inque rei signum serpentem serpere jussum ; he would want no other proofs that it was an allegory he was reading, and intended to be understood as such. Nor, if we suppose him conversant with Oriental works of any- thing like the same antiquity, could it surprise him to find events of true history in connexion with, or historical personages among the actors and interlocutors of, the parable. In the temple-language of Egypt the serpent was the symbol of the understanding in its twofold function, namely, as the faculty of means to proximate or medial ends, analogous to the instinct of the more intelligent animals, ant, bee, beaver, and the like, and opposed to the practical reason, as the determinant of the ultimate end ; and again, as the discursive and logical faculty possessed individually by each individual — the Xoyos ip knarry, in distinction from the vovs, that is, intuitive reason, the source of ideas and absolute truths, and the principle of the necessary and the universal in our affirmations and conclusions. Without or in contravention to the reason — (that is, the spiritual mind of St. Paul, and the light that lighteth every man of St. John) — this understanding ((ppSvrj/xa capubs, or carnal mind) becomes the sophistic principle, the wily tempter to evil by counterfeit good ; the pander and advocate of the passions and appetites : ever in league with, and always first applying 206 AIDS TO REFLECTION. fess that to be, which I feel and groan under, and by which all the world is miserable. to, the desire, as the inferior nature in man, the woman in our humanity; and through the desire prevailing on the will (the manhood, virtus) against the command of the universal reason, and against the light of reason in the will itself. This essential inherence of an intelligential principle (&$ voep6v) in the will (apxb 6€\rjTucf}) 3 or rather the Will itself thus considered, the Greeks expressed by an appropriate word, &ov\t). This, but little differing from Origen's inter- pretation or hypothesis, is supported and confirmed by the very old tradition of the homo androgynus, that is, that the original man, the individual first created, was bi-sexual; a chimaera, of which, and of many other mythological traditions, the most probable explanation is, that they were originally symbolical glyphs or sculptures, and afterwards translated into words, yet literally, that is, into the common names of the several figures and images composing the symbol ; while the symbolic meaning was left to be decy- phered as before, and sacred to the initiate. As to the abstruseness and subtlety of the conceptions, this is so far from being an objection to this oldest gloss on this venerable relic of Semitic, not impossibly antediluvian, philosophy, that to those who have carried their researches farthest back into Greek, Egyptian, Persian, and Indian antiquity, it will seem a strong confirmation. Or if I chose to address the sceptic in the language of the day, I might remind him that as alchemy went before chemistry, and astrology before astronomy, so in all countries of civilised man have meta- physics outrun common sense. Fortunately for us that they have so ! For from all we know of the unmet aphy si cal tribes of New Holland and elsewhere, a common sense not preceded by metaphysics is no very enviable possession. 0, be not cheated, my youthful Reader, by this shallow prate ! The creed of true common sense is composed of the results of scientific meditation, observation, and experiment, as far as they are generally intelligible. It differs, therefore, in different countries, and in every different age of the same ON SPIRITUAL EELIGJON. 207 Adam turned his back upon tbe sun, and dwelt in tbe dark and the shadow. He sinned and fell into country. The common sense of a people is the moveable index of its average judgment and information. Without metaphysics science could have had no language, and common sense no materials. But to return to my subject. It cannot be denied that the Mosaic narrative, thus interpreted, gives a just and faithful exposition of the birth and parentage, and successive moments of phenomenal sin (peccatum phenomenon ; crimen primarium et commune), that is, of sin as it reveals itself in time, and is an immediate object of consciousness. And in this sense most truly does the Apostle assert, that in Adam we all fell. The first human sinner is the adequate repre- sentative of all his successors. And with no less truth may it be said, that it is the same Adam that falls in every man, and from the same reluctance to abandon the too dear and undivorceable Eve ; and the same Eve tempted by the same serpentine and perverted understanding, which, framed originally to be the interpreter of the reason and the minis- tering angel of the spirit, is henceforth sentenced and bound over to the service of the animal nature, its needs and its cravings, dependent on the senses for all its materials, with the world of sense for its appointed sphere : Upon thy belly shall thou go, and dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy life. I have shown elsewhere, that as the instinct of the mere intelligence differs in degree, not in kind, and circum- stantially, not essentially, from the vis vita 3 , or vital power in the assimilative and digestive functions of the stomach and other organs of nutrition, even so the Understanding in itself, and distinct from the Reason and Conscience, differs in degree only from the instinct in the animal. It is still but a least of the field, though more subtle than any beast of the field, and therefore in its corruption and perveision cursed above any ; — a pregnant word ! of which if the reader wants an expo- sition or paraphrase, he may find one more than two thousand years old among the fragments of the poet Menander. This is tfie understanding which in its every thought is to be brought 208 AIDS TO REFLECTION. God's displeasure, and was made naked of all his su- pernatural endowments, was ashamed and sentenced under obedience to faith ; which it can scarcely fail to be, if only it be first subjected to the reason, of which spiritual faith is even the blossoming and the fructifying process. For it is indifferent whether I say that Faith is the interpenetration of the Reason and the Will, or that it is at once the assurance and the commencement of the approaching union between the reason and the intelligible realities, the living and sub- stantial truths, that are even in this life its most proper objects. I have thus put the reader in possession of my own opinions respecting the narrative in Gen. ii. and iii. v E20d to death, and deprived of the means of long life, and of the sacrament and instrument of immortality, I mean the tree of life.* He then fell under the evils of a sickly body, and a passionate, ignorant, and unin structed soul. His sin made him sickly, his sickness made him peevish : his sin left him ignorant, his ig norance made him foolish and unreasonable. His sin left him to his nature : and by his nature, whoever was to be born at all, was to be born a child, and to do before he could understand, and to be bred under laws to which he was always bound, but which could not always be exacted ; and he was to choose when he could not reason, and had passions most strong when he had his understanding most weak ; and the more need he had of a curb, the less strength he had to use it ! And this being the case of all the world, what was every man's evil became all men's greater evil ; and though alone it was very bad, yet when they came together it was made much worse. Like ships in a storm, every one alone hath enough to do to outride it ; but when they meet, besides the evils of Rabbinical commentators and traditioniets, from whom the fashion was derived, that in carry iug it as far as our own Church has carried it, I follow her judgment, not my own. Indeed I know but one other part of the Scriptures not universally held to be parabolical, which, not without the sanction of great authorities, I am disposed to regard as an apologue or parable, namely, the book of Jonah : the reasons for believing the Jewish Nation collectively to be therein impersonated seeming to me unanswerable. And it is my deliberate and conscientious conviction, that the proofs of such interpretation having been the intention of the inspired writer or compiler of the book of Genesis lie on the face of the narrative itself. * Rom. v. 14. — Who were they who had not sinned after the similitude of Adam's transgression; and over whom, notwithstanding, death reigned I V 210 AIDS TO REFLECTION. the storm, they find the intolerable calamity of their mutual concussion ; and every ship that is ready to be oppressed with the tempest, is a worse tempest to every vessel against which it is violently dashed. So it is in mankind. Every man hath evil enough of his own, and it is hard for a man to live xqi to the rule of his own reason and conscience. But when he hath parents and children, friends and enemies, buyers and sellers, lawyers and clients, a family and a neighbourhood — then it is that every man dashes against another, and one relation requires what another denies ; and when one speaks another will contradict him ; and that which is well spoken is sometimes innocently mistaken ; and that upon a good cause produces an evil effect ; and by these, and ten thousand other concurrent causes, man is made more than most miserable.* COMMENT. The first question we should put to ourselves, when we have to read a passage that perplexes us in a work of authority, is : What does the writer mean by all this ? And tho second question should be, What does he intend by all this ? In the passage before us, Taylor's meaning is not quite clear. A sin is an evil which has its ground or origin in the agent, and not in the compulsion of circumstances. Cir- cumstances are compulsory from the absence of a power to resist or control them : and if this absence likewise be the effect of circumstance (that is, if it have been neither directly nor indirectly caused by the agent himself), the evil derives from the circumstances ; and therefore (in the Apostle's sense of the word, sin, * Deus JuslificatuSf with some slight omissions and altera- tions. — Ed. ON SPJEITUAL KELIGION. 211 when he speaks of the exceeding sinfulness of sin such evil is not sin ; and the person who suffers it, or who is the compelled instrument of its infliction on others, may feel regret, but cannot feel remorse. So likewise of the word origin, original, or originant. The Reader cannot too early he warned that it is not applicable, and, without abuse of language, can never be applied to a mere link in a chain of effects, where each, indeed, stands in the relation of a cause to those that follow, but is at the same time the effect of all that precede. For in these cases a cause amounts to little more than an antecedent. At the utmost it means only a conductor of the causative influence ; and the old axiom, causa causce causa causati, applies with a never-ending regress to each several link, up the whole chain of nature. But this is Nature : and no natural thing or act can be called originant, or be truly said to have an origin * in any other. The * This sense of the word is implied even in its meta- phorical or figurative use. Thus we may say of a river that it originates in suck or such a fountain ; but the water of a canal is derived from such or suck a river. Tke power whick we call Nature, may be thus defined : a power subject to tke law of continuity, (lex continui ; nam in natura non datur saltus) wkick law tke kuman understanding, by a necessity arising out of its own constitution, can conceive only under tke form of cause and effect. Tkat tkis form or law of cause and effect is, relatively to tke world witkout, or to tkings as tkey subsist independently of our perceptions, only a form or mode of tkinking ; that it is a law inkerent in tke understanding itself just as the symmetry of tke miscellaneous objects seen by tke kaleidoscope inkeres in, or results from, the mechanism of tke kaleidoscope itself— tkis becomes evident as soon as we attempt to apply the preconception directly to any operation of nature. For in tkis case we are forced to represent tke cause as being at tke same instant tke effect, and vice versa tke effect as being tke p2 £12 AIDS TO REFLECTION. moment we assume an origin in nature, a true begin ning, an actual first — that moment we rise above cause — a relation which we seek to express by the terms action and re-action ; but for which the term reciprocal action or the law of reciprocity (Wechsdwirkung) would be both more accurate and more expressive. These are truths which can scarcely be too frequently impressed on the mind that is in earnest in the wish to reflect aright. Nature is a line in constant and continuous evolution. Its beginning is lost in the supernatural : and for our understanding therefore it must appear as a con- tinuous line without beginning or end. But where there is no discontinuity there can be no origination, and every appearance of origination in nature is but a shadow of our own casting. It is a reflection from our own will or spirit. Herein, indeed, the will consists. This is the essential character by which Will is opposed to Nature, as spirit, and raised above nature as self-determining spirit — this namely, that it is a power of originating an act or state. A young friend, or as he was pleased to describe himself, a pupil of mine, who is beginning to learn to think, asked me to explain by an instance what is meant by " originating an act or state." My answer was — This morning I awoke with a dull pain, which I knew from experience the getting up would remove : and yet by adding to the drowsiness and by weakening or depressing the volition (voluntas sensorialis seu mechanica) the very pain seemed to hold me back, to fix me, as it were, .to the bed. After a peevish ineffectual quarrel with this painful disinclination, I said to myself: Let me count twenty, and the moment I come to nineteen I will leap out of bed. So said, and so done. Now should you ever find yourself in the same or in a similar state, and should attend to the goings : on within you, you will learn what I mean by originating an act. At the same time you will see that it belongs exclusively to the will (arbitrium) ; that there is nothing analogous to it in outward experiences ; and that I had, therefore, no way of explaining it but by referring you to an act of your own, and to the peculial ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION 213 nature, and are compelled to assume a supernatural power. (Gen. i. 1.) self-consciousness preceding and accompanying it. As we know what life is by being, so we know what will is by acting. That in willing, replied my friend, we appear to ourselves to constitute an actual beginning, and that this seems unique, and without any example in our sensible experience, or in the phcenomna of nature, is an undeniable fact. But may it not be an illusion arising from our igno- rance of the antecedent causes i You may suppose this, I rejoined: — that the soul of every man should impose a lie on itself; and that this lie, and the acting on the faith of its being the most important of all truths, and the most real of all realities, should form the main contra-distinctive character of humanity, and the only basis of that distinction between things and persons on which our whole moral and criminal law is grounded; — you may suppose this; — I cannot, as I could in the case of an arithmetical or geometrical propo- sition, render it impossible for you to suppose it. Whether you can reconcile such a supposition with the belief of an all-wise Creator is another question. But, taken singly, it is doubtless in your power to suppose this. Were it not, the belief of the contrary would be no subject of a command, no part of a moral or religious duty. You would not, however, suppose it without a reason. But all the pretexts that ever have been or ever can be offered for this supposition, are built on certain notions of the understanding that have been generalised from conceptions ; which conceptions, again, are themselves generalised or abstracted from objects of sense. Neither the one nor the other, therefore, have any force except in application to objects of sense, and within the sphere of sensible experience. What but absurdity can follow, if you decide on spirit by the laws of matter; — if you judge that, which if it be at all must be supersensual, by that faculty of your mind, the very definition of which is " the faculty judging according to sense 1 " These then are unworthy the name of reasons : they are only pretexts. But without reason to contradict your own consciousness in Q14 AIDS TO REFLECTION. It will be an equal convenience to myself and to my Reader, to let it be agreed between us, that we will generalise the word circumstance, so as to under- stand by it, as often as it occurs in this Comment, all and every thing not connected with the Will, past or present, of a free agent. Even though it were the blood in the chambers of his heart, or his own inmost sensations, we will regard them as circumstantial ■ extrinsic, or from without. defiance of your own conscience, is contrary to reason. Such and such writers, you say, have made a great sensation. If so, I am sorry for it ; but the fact I take to be this. From a variety of causes the more austere sciences have fallen into discredit, and impostors have taken advantage of the general ignorance to give a sort of mysterious and terrific importance to a parcel of trashy sophistry, the authors of which would not have employed themselves more irrationally in submit- ting the works of Raffaelle or Titian to canons of criticism deduced from the sense of smell. Nay, less so. For here the objects and the organs are only disparate: while in the other case they are absolutely diverse. I conclude this note by reminding the Eeader, that my first object is to make myself understood. "When he is in full possession of my meaning, then let him consider whether it deserves to be received as the truth. Had it been my immediate purpose to make him believe me as well as understand me, I should have thought it necessary to warn him that a finite will does indeed originate an act, and may originate a state of being ; but yet only in and for the agent himself. A finite will constitutes a true beginning ; but with regard to the series of motions and changes by which the free act is manifested and made effectual, the finite will gives a begin- ning only by coincidence with that Absolute Will, which is at the same time Infinite Power. Such is the language of religion, and of philosophy too in the last instance. But I express the same truth in ordinary language when I say, that a finite will, or the will of a finite free-agent, acts outwardly by confluence with the laws of nature. Otf SPIRITUAL RELIGION. Q15 la this sense of the word, original, and in the sense before given of sin, it is evident that the phrase, Original Sin, is a pleonasm, the epithet not adding to the thought, but only enforcing it. For if it be sin, it must be original ; and a state or act, that has not its origin in the will, may be calamity, deformity, disease, or mischief; but a sin it cannot be. It is not enough that the act appears voluntary, or that it is intentional ; or that it has the most hateful pas- sions or debasing appetite for its proximate cause and accompaniment. All these may be found in a mad- house, where neither law nor humanity permit us to condemn the actor of sin. The reason of law declares the maniac not a free-agent ; and the verdict follows of course — Not guilty. Now mania, as distinguished from idiocy, frenzy, delirium, hypochondria, and derangement (the last term used specifically to ex- press a suspension or disordered state of the under- standing or adaptive power), is the occultation or eclipse of reason, as the power of ultimate ends. The maniac, it is well known, is often found clever and inventive in the selection and adaptation of means to his ends ; but his ends are madness. He has lost his reason. For though reason, in finite beings, is not the will — or how could the will be opposed to the reason ? — yet it is the condition, the sine qua non of a free will. We will now return to the extract from Taylor on a theme of deep interest in itself, and trebly import- ant from its bearings. For without just and distinct views respecting the Article of Original Sin, it is impossible to understand aright any one of the peculiar doctrines of Christianity. Now my first complaint is, that the eloquent Bishop, while he admits the fact as established beyond controversy by uni- versal experience, yet leaves us wholly in the dark ag QIC AIDS TO REFLECTION. to the main point, supplies us with no answer to the principal question — why he names it Original Sin. It cannot he said, We know what the Bishop means, and what matters the name — for the nature of the fact, and in what light it should he regarded by us, depends on the nature of our answer to the question, whether Original Sin is or is not the right and proper designation. I can imagine the same quantum of sufferings, and yet if I had reason to regard them as symptoms of a commencing change, as pains of growth, the temporary deformity and misproportioDS of immaturity, or (as in the final sloughing of the caterpillar) the throes and struggles of the waxing or evolving Psyche, I should think it no Stoical flight to doubt, how T far I was authorised to declare the circumstance an evil at all. Most assuredly I would not express or describe the fact as an evil having an origin in the sufferers themselves, or as sin. Let us, however, waive this objection. Let it be supposed that the Bishop uses the word in a different and more comprehensive sense, and that by Sin he understands evil of all kind connected with or result- ing from actions — though I do not see how we can represent the properties even of inanimate bodies (of poisonous substances for instance) except as acts resulting from the constitution of such bodies. Or if this sense, though not unknown to the mystic divines, should be too comprehensive and remote, I will suppose the Bishop to comprise under the term Sin, the evil accompanying or consequent on human actions and purposes : — though here, too, I have a right to be informed, for what reason and on what grounds sin is thus limited to human agency ? And truly, I should be at no loss to assign the reason. But then this reason would instantly bring me back to my first definition ; and any other reason, than that ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 217 the human agent is endowed with reason, and with a will which can place itself either in subjection or in opposition to his reason — in other words, that man is alone of all known animals a responsible creature — I neither know nor can imagine. Thus, then, the sense which Taylor — and with him the antagonists generally of this Article as propounded by the first Reformers — attaches to the words, Original Sin, needs only be carried on into its next consequence, and it will be found to imply the sense which I have given — namely, that sin is evil having an origin. But inasmuch as it is evil, in God it cannot originate : and yet in some Spirit (that is, in some supernatural power) it must. For in nature there is no origin. Sin therefore is spiritual evil : but the spiritual in man is the will. Now when we do not refer to any particular sins, but to that state and constitution of the will, which is the ground, condition, and common cause of all sins ; and when we would further express the truth, that this corrupt nature of the will must in some sense or other be considered as its own act, that the corruption must have been self-originated ; — in this case and for this purpose we may, with no less propriety than force, entitle this dire spiritual evil and source of all evil, which is absolutely such, Original Sin. I have said, the corrupt nature of the will. I might add, that the admission of a nature into a spiritual essence by its own act is a corruption. Such, I repeat, would be the inevitable conclusion, if Taylor's sense of the term were carried on into its immediate consequences. But the whole of his most eloquent Treatise makes it certain that Taylor did not carry it on : and consequently Original Sin, according to his conception, is a calamity, which being common to all men must be supposed to result from 218 AIDS TO REFLECTION. their common nature ; in other words, the universal calamity of human nature. Can we wonder, then, that a mind, a heart, like Taylor's, should reject, that he should strain his faculties to explain away the belief that this calamity, so dire in itself, should appear to the All-merciful God a rightful cause and motive for inflicting on the wretched sufferers a calamity infinitely more tremen- dous; — nay, that it should be incompatible with Divine Justice not to punish it by everlasting torment ? Or need we be surprised if he found nothing that could reconcile his mind to such a belief, in the circum- stance that the acts now consequent on this calamity, and either directly or indirectly effects of the same, were, five or six thousand years ago in the instance of a certain individual and his accomplice, anterior to the calamity, and the cause or occasion of the same ; — that what in all other men is disease, in these two persons was guilt ; — that what in us is hereditary, and consequently nature, in them was original, and consequently sin ? Lastly, might it not be presumed, that so enlightened, and at the same time so affec- tionate, a divine would even fervently disclaim and reject the pretended justifications of God grounded on flimsy analogies drawn from the imperfections of human ordinances and human justice-courts — some of very doubtful character even as human institutes, and all of them just only as far as they are necessary, and rendered necessaiy chiefly b\ the weakness and wickedness, the limited powers and corrupt passions, of mankind? The more confidently might this be presumed of so acute and practised a logician, as Taylor, in addition to his other extraordinary gifts, is known to have been, when it is demonstrable that the most current of these justifications rests on a palpable equivocation : namely, the gross misuse of the word ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 219 Right.* An instance ^ill explain my meaning. In as far as, from the known frequency of dishonest or * It may conduce to the readier comprehension of this point if I say, that the equivoque consists in confounding the almost technical sense of the noun substantive, right, (a sense most often determined by the genitive case fol- lowing, as the right of property, the right of husbands to chastise their wives, and so forth) with the popular sense of the adjective, right : though this likewise has, if not a double sense, yet a double application ; — the first, when it is used to express the fitness of a mean to a relative end ; for example, "the right way to obtain the right distance at which a picture should be examined," and the like ; and the other, when it expresses a perfect conformity and eommen- surateness with the immutable idea of equity, or perfect rectitude. Hence the close connection between the words righteousness and godliness, that is, godlikeness. I should be tempted to subjoin a few words on a pre- dominating doctrine closely connected with the present argument — the Paleyan principle of general consequences ; but the inadequacy of this principle as a criterion of right and wrong, and above all its utter unfitness as a moral guide, have been elsewmere so fully stated (Friend, vol. ii. essay xi. 3rd edit.), that even in again referring to the subject I must shelter myself under Seneca's rule, that w T hat we cannot too frequently think of, we cannot too often be made to recollect. It is, however, of immediate import- ance to the point in discussion, that the reader should be made to see how altogether incompatible the principle of judging by general consequences is with the idea of an Eternal, Omnipresent, and Omniscient Being; — that he should be made aware of the absurdity of attributing any form of generalisation to the All-perfect Mind. To gene- ralise is a faculty and function of the human understanding, and from the imperfection and limitation of the under- standing are the use and the necessity of generalising derived. Generalisation is a substitute for intuition, for tho power of intuitive, that is, immediate knowledge. As 3 220 AIDS TO REFLECTION. mischievous persons, it may have heen fouud neces- sary, in so far is the law justifiable in giving land- owners the right of proceeding against a neighbour or fellow-citizen for even a slight trespass on that which the law has made their property : — nay, of proceeding in sundry instances criminally and even capitally But surely, either there is no religion in the world, and nothing obligatory in the precepts of the Gospel, or there are occasions in which it would be very wrong in the proprietor to exercise the right, which yet it may be highly expedient that he should possess. On this ground it is, that religion is the sustaining opposite of law. That Taylor, therefore, should have striven fervently against the Article so interpreted and so vindicated, is (for me at least) a subject neither of surprise nor of complaint. It is the doctrine which he substitutes ; it is the weakness and inconsistency betrayed in the defence of this substitute; it is the unfairness with which he blackens the established Article — for to give it, as it had been caricatured by a few Ultra-Calvin- ists during the fever of the (so called) Quinquarticular controversy, was in effect to blacken it — and then imposes another scheme, to which the same objections apply with even increased force, a scheme which seems to differ from the former only by adding fraud and mockery to injustice ; — these are the things that excite my wonder; it is of these that I complain. substitute, it is a gift of inestimable value to a finite intelli- gence, such as man in his present state is endowed with and capable of exercising; but yet a substitute only, and an imperfect one to boot. To attribute it to God is the grossest anthropomorphism : and grosser instances of anthro- pomorphism than are to be found in the controversial writings on Original Sin and Vicarious Satisfaction, the records of superstition do not supply. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 221 For what does the Bishop's scheme amount to ? God, he tells us, required of Adam a perfect obedience, and made it possible by endowing him " with perfect rectitude and super-natural heights of grace " propor- tionate to the obedience which he required. As a consequence of his disobedience, Adam lost this rectitude, this perfect sanity and proportion aten ess of his intellectual, moral and corporeal state, powers and impulses ; and as the penalty of his crime, he was deprived of all supernatural aids and graces. The death, with whatever is comprised in the Scrip- tural sense of the word, death, began from that moment to work in him, and this consequence he conveyed to his offspring, and through them to all his posterity, that is, to all mankind. They were born diseased in mind, body and will. For what less than disease can we call a necessity of error and a predisposition to sin and sickness? Taylor, indeed, asserts, that though perfect obedience became incom- parably more difficult, it was not, however, absolutely impossible. Yet he himself admits that the contrary was universal ; that of the countless millions of Adam's posterity, not a single individual ever realised, or approached to the realisation of, this possibility ; and (if my memory * docs not deceive me) Taylor * I have, since this page was written, met with several passages in the Treatise on Repentance, the Holy Living and Dying, and the Worthy Communicant, in which the Bishop asserts without scruple the impossibility of total obedience ; and on the same grounds as I have given. [See the Doctrine and Practice of Repentance, c. I. s. 2. " — who — conclude that it is possible to keep the com- mandments, though as yet no man ever did, but He that did it for us all." xv. " But in the moral sense, that is, when we consider what man is, and what are his strengths, and how many his enemies, and how soon he falls, and that 222 AIDS TO KEFLECTIOK himself has elsewhere exposed — and if he has not, yet common-sense will do it for him — the sophistry in asserting of a whole what may be true of the whole, but is in fact true only of each of its component parts. Any one may snap a horse-hair : therefore, any one may perform the same feat with the horse's tail. On a level floor (on the hardened sand for instance, of a sea-beach) I chalk two parallel straight lines, with a width of eight inches. It is possible for a man, with a bandage over his eyes, to keep within the path for two or three paces : therefore, it is possible for him to walk blindfold for two or three leagues without a single deviation ! And this possibility would suffice to acquit me of injustice, though I had placed man-traps within an inch of one line, and knew 7 that there were pit-falls and deep wells beside the other ! This assertion, therefore, without adverting to its discordance with, if not direct contradiction to, the tenth and thirteenth Articles of our Church, I shall not, I trust, be thought to rate below its true value, if I treat it as an infinitesimal possibility that may be safely dropped in the calculation : and so proceed with the argument. The consequence then of Adams crime was, by a natural necessity, inherited by persons who could not (the Bishop affirms) in any sense have been accomplices in the crime or partakers in the guilt : and yet consistently with the divine holiness, it was not possible that the same perfect obedience should not be required of them. Now he forgets when he should remember, and his faculties are asleep when they should be awake, and he is hindered by intervening accidents, and weakened and determined by superinduced qualities, habits and necessities, — the keeping of the commandments is morally impossible." xxxiv. — Ed.] ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 223 what would the idea of equity, what would the law inscribed by the Creator on the heart of man, seem to dictate in this case? Surely, that the supple- mentary aids, the supernatural graces correspondent to a law above nature, should be increased in propor- tion to the diminished strength of the agents, and the increased resistance to be overcome by them. But no ! not only the consequence of Adam's act, but the penalty due to his crime, was perpetuated. His descendants were despoiled or left destitute of these aids and graces, while the obligation to perfect obedience was continued ; an obligation too, the non-fulfilment of which brought with it death and the unutterable woe that cleaves to an immortal soul for ever alienated from its Creator. Observe that all these results of Adam's fall enter into Bishop Taylor's scheme of Original Sin equally as into that of the first Reformers. In this respect the Bishop's doctrine is the same with that laid down in the Articles and Homilies of the English Church. The only difference that has hitherto appeared, con- sists in the aforesaid mathematical possibility of fulfilling the whole law, which in the Bishop's scheme is affirmed to remain still in human nature,* or (as it is elsewhere expressed) in the nature of the human * " There is a natural possibility and a moral : there are abilities in every man to do anything that is there com- manded, and he that can do well to-day, may do so to- morrow ; in the nature of things this is true : and since every sin is a breach of law, which a man might and ought to have kept, it is naturally certain, that whenever any man did break the commandment, he might have done otherwise. In man, therefore, speaking naturally and of the physical possibilities of things, there is by those assistances which are given in the Gospel, ability to keep the commandments evangelical. But in the moral sense," &c. vhi supra. — Ed. 224 AIDS TO REFLECTION. will.* But though it were possible to grant this existence of a power in all men, which in no man was ever exemplified, and where the non-actualisation of such power is, a priori, so certain, that the belief or imagination of the contrary in any individual is expressly given us by the Holy Spirit as a test, whereby it may be known that the truth is not in him 9 as an infallible sign of imposture or &3lf-delusion ! — * Availing himself of the equivocal sense, and (I most readily admit) the injudicious use of the word " free " in the — even on this account — faulty phrase, " free only to sin," Taylor treats the notion of a power in the will of deter- mining itself to evil without an equal power of determining itself to good, as a i( foolery." I would this had been the only instance in his Deus Justificatus of that inconsiderate contempt so frequent in the polemic treatises of minor divines, who will have ideas of reason, spiritual truths that can only be spiritually discerned, translated for them into adequate conceptions of the understanding. The great articles of Corruption and Eedemption are propounded to us as spiritual mysteries; and every interpretation that pretends to explain them into comprehensible notions, does by its very success furnish presumptive proof of its failure. The acuteness and logical dexterity, with which Taylor has brought out the falsehood, or semblance of falsehood, in the Calvinistic scheme, are truly admirable. Had he next con- centred his thoughts in tranquil meditation, and asked himself: what then is the truth? — if a Will be at all, what must a Will be? — he might, I think, have setn that a nature in a will implies already a corruption of that will ; that a nature is as inconsistent with freedom as free choice with an incapacity of choosing aught but evil. And lastly, a free power in a nature to fulfil a law above nature ! — I, who love and honor this good and great man with all the reverence that can dwell " on this side idolatry/' dare not retort on this assertion the charge of foolery; but I find it a paradox as startling to my reason as any of the hard Bayings of the Dort divines were to his understanding. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 225 though it were possible to grant this, which, con- sistently with Scripture and the principles of reasoning which we apply in all other cases, it is not possible to grant ; — and though it were possible likewise to overlook the glaring sophistry of concluding in relation to a series of indeterminate length, that whoever can do any one, can therefore do all ; a conclusion, the futility of which must force itself on the common sense of every man who understands the proposition ; still the question will arise — Why, and on what principle of equity, were the unoffending sentenced to be born with so fearful a disproportion of their powers to their duties ? Why were they subjected to a law, the fulfilment of which was all but impossible, yet the penalty on the failure tremendous ? Admit that for those who had never enjoyed a happier lot, it was no punishment to be made to inhabit a ground which the Creator had cursed, and to have been born with a body prone to sickness, and a soul surrounded with temptation, and having the worst temptation within itself in its own temptibility ; — to have the duties of a Spirit with the wants and appetites of an Animal ! Yet on such imperfect creatures, with means so scanty and impediments so numerous, to impose the same task-work that had been required of a creature with a pure and entire nature, and provided with super- natural aids — if this be not to inflict a penalty ; yet to he placed under a law, the difficulty of obeying which is infinite, and to have momently to struggle with this difficulty, and to live momently in hazard of these consequences — if this be no punishment ; — words have no correspondence with thoughts, and thoughts are but shadows of each other, shadows that own no substance for their antitype. Of such an outrage on common sense Taylor was Incapable. He himself calls it a penalty; he admits Q 2i0 .AIDS TO REFLFCTION, that in effect it is a punishment : nor does he seek to suppress the question that so naturally arises out of this admission .;. — on what principle of equity were the innocent offspring of Adam punished at all ? He. meets it, and puts in an answer. He states the pro- blem, and gives his solution — namely, that " God on Adam's account was so exasperated with mankind, that being angry he would still continue the punish- ment ! V — "The case" (sa} r s the Bishop) "is this: Jonathan and Michal were Saul's children. It came to pass, that seven of Saul's issue were to be hanged : all equally innocent, equally culpable." [Before I quote further, I feel myself called on to remind the reader, that these last two words were added by Taylor, without the least grounds in Scripture, ac- cording to which (2 Sam. xxi.) no crime was laid to their charge, no blame imputed to them. Without any pretence of culpable conduct on their part, they were arraigned as children of Saul, and sacrificed to a point of state-expedience. In recommencing the quotation, therefore, the reader ought to let the sen- tence conclude with the w r ords — ] " all equally inno- cent. David took the five sons of Michal, for she had left him unhandsomely. Jonathan was his friend: and therefore he spared his son, Mephibosheth. Now here it was indifferent as to the guilt of the persons (bear in mind, Reader, that no guilt ivas attached to any of them ! ) whether David should take the sons of Michal, or Jonathan's ; but it is likely that as upon the kindness that David had to Jonathan, he spared his son ; so upon the just provocation of Michal, ho made that evil fall upon them, which, it may be, they should not have suffered, if their mother had been kind. Adam was to God, as Michal to David."* * Vol. ix. pp. 5, 6. Heber's edit.— Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 227 This answer, this solution, proceeding too from a divine so pre-eminently gifted, and occurring (with other passages not less startling) in a vehement re- futation of the received doctrine, on the express ground of its opposition to the clearest conceptions and best feelings of mankind — this it is that surprises me. It is of this that I complain. The Almighty Father exasperated with those, whom the Bishop has himself in the same Treatise described as " innocent and most unfortunate " — the two things best fitted to conciliate love and pity ! Or though they did not remain innocent, yet those whose abandonment to a mere nature, while they were left amenable to a law above nature, he affirms to be the irresistible cause, that they one and all did sin ! And this decree illus- trated and justified by its analogy to one of the worst actions of an imperfect mortal ! From such of my Readers as will give a thoughtful perusal to these words of Taylor, I dare anticipate a concurrence with the judgment which I here transcribe from the blank space at the end of the Deus Justl/icatus in my own copy : and winch, though twenty years have elapsed since it was written, I have never seen reason to recant or modify. " This most eloquent Treatise may be compared to a statue of Janus, with the one face, which we must suppose fronting the Calvinistic tenet, entire and fresh, as from the master's hand ; beaming with life and force, witty scorn on the lip, and a brow at once bright and weighty with satisfying reason : — the other, looking toward the ' something to be put in its place,' maimed, featureless, and weather-bitten into an almost visionary confusion and indistinctness." * With these expositions I hasten to contrast the * See Notes on English Divines, voL L pp. 275 — 27S. Q2 823 AIDS TO REFLECTION. Scriptural article respecting original Sin, or the cor- rupt and sinful nature of the human Will, and the belief which alone is required of us as Christians. And here the first thing to be considered, and which will at once remove a world of error, is, that this is no tenet first introduced or imposed by Christianity, and, which, should a man see reason to disclaim the authority of the Gospel, would no longer have any claim on his attention. It is no perplexity that a man may get rid of by ceasing to be a Christian, and which has no existence for a philosophic Deist. It is a fact affirmed, indeed, in the Christian Scriptures alone with the force and frequency proportioned to its consummate importance; but a fact acknowledged in every religion that retains the least glimmering of the patriarchal faith in a God infinite, yet personal : — a fact assumed or implied as the basis of every religion, of which any relics remain of earlier date than the last and total apostasy of the Pagan world, when the faith in the great I Am, the Creator, w r as extinguished in the sensual Polytheism, which is inevitably the final result of Pantheism, or the worship of Nature ; and the only form under which the Pantheistic scheme — that, ac- cording to which the World is God, and the material universe itself the one only absolute Being — can exist for a people, or become the popular creed. Thus in the most ancient books of ihe Brahmins, the deep sense of this fact, and the doctrines grounded on obscure traditions of the promised remedy, are seen struggling, and now gleaming, now flashing, through the mist of Pantheism, and producing the incon- gruities and gross contradictions of the Brahmin Mythology: while in the rival sect — in that most strange phenomenon, the religious Atheism of the Buddhists, with whom God is only universal matter considered abstractedly from all particular forms — ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 229 the fact is placed among the delusions natural to man, which together with other superstitions grounded on a supposed essential difference between right and wrong, the sage is to decompose and precipitate from the menstruum of his more refined apprehensions ! Thus in denying the fact, they virtually acknow- ledge it. From the remote East turn to the mythology of the Lesser Asia, to the descendants of Javan, who dwelt in the tents of Shem, and possessed the isles. Here, again, and in the usual form of an historic solution, we find the same fact, and as characteristic of the human race, stated in that earliest and most venerable my thus t or symbolic parable, of Prometheus — that truly wonderful fable, in which the characters of the rebellious Spirit and of the Divine Friend of mankind (Oeos <\)ikav6p~os) are united in the same person;* thus in the most striking manner noting the forced amalgamation of the Patriarchal tradition with the incongruous scheme of Pantheism. This and the connected tale of Io, which is but the sequel of the Prometheus, stand alone in the Greek Mytho- logy, in which elsewhere both gods and men are mere powers and products of nature. And most noticeable it is, that soon after the promulgation and spread of the Gospel had awakened the moral sense, and had opened the eyes even of its wiser enemies to the necessity of providing some solution of this great problem of the moral world, the beautiful parable of Cupid and Psyche was brought forward as a rival Fall of Man : and the fact of a moral corruption conna- tural with the human race was again recognised. In the assertion of Original Sin the Greek Mythology rose and set. * See Lectures on Sliakspeare, vol. ii. p. 182. — £'<£, 230 AIDS TO REFLECTION. But not only was the fact acknowledged of a law in the nature of man resisting the law of God ; (and whatever is placed in active and direct oppugnancy to the good is, ipso facto, positive evil ;) it was like- wise an acknowledged mystery, and one which hy the nature of the subject must ever remain such — a problem, of which any other solution than the state- ment of the fact itself, was demonstrably impossible. That it is so, the least reflection will suffice to con- vince every man, who has previously satisfied himself that he is a responsible being. It follows necessarily from the postulate of a responsible will. Refuse to grant this, and I have not a word to say. Concede this, and you concede all. For this is the essential attribute of a will, and contained in the very idea, that whatever determines the will acquires this power from a previous determination of the will itself. The will is ultimately self determined, or it is no longer a will under the law of perfect freedom, but a nature under the mechanism of cause and effect. And if by an act, to which it had determined itself, it has sub- jected itself to the determination of nature (in the language of St. Paul, to the law of the flesh), it receives a nature into itself, and so far it becomes a nature : and this is a corruption of the will and a corrupt nature. It is also a fall of man, inasmuch as his will is the condition of his personality; the ground and condition of the attribute which consti- tutes him man. And the ground-work of personal being is a capacity of acknowledging the moral law (the law of the spirit, the law of freedom, the Divine Will) as that which should, of itself, suffice to de- termine the will to a free obedience of the law, tho law working therein by its own exceeding lawfulness.* * If the law worked on the will, it would be the working ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 231 This, and this alone, is positive good ; good in itself, and independent of all relations. Whatever resists, and, as a positive force, opposes this in the will, 13 therefore evil. But an evil in the will is an evil will ; and as all moral evil (that is, all evil that is evil without reference to its contingent physical conse quences) is of the will, this evil will must have its source in the will. And thus we might go back from act to act, from evil to evil, ad infinitum, without advancing a step. We call an individual a bad man, not because an action of his is contrary to the law, but because it has led us to conclude from it some principle opposed to the law, some private maxim or by-law in his will contrary to the universal law of right reason in the conscience, as the ground of the action. But this evil principle again must be grounded in some other principle which has been made determinant of his will by the will's own self-determination. For if not, it must have its ground in some necessity of nature, in some instinct or propensity imposed, not acquired, another's work not his own. Consequently neither act nor principle could be imputed ; and relatively to the agent, not original, not sin. Now let the grounds on which the fact of an evii inherent in the will is affirmable in the instance of any one man, be supposed equally applicable in every instance, and concerning all men : so that the fact is asserted of the individual, not because he has committed this or that crime, or because he has shown himself to be this or that man, but simply because he is a man. Let the evil be supposed such as to imply the impossibility of an individual's referring to any particular time at which it might be conceived to of an extrinsic and alien force, and, as St. Paul profound! j argues, would prove the will sinful. £32 AIDS TO REFLECTION. have commenced, or to any period of his existence at which it was not existing. Let it be supposed, in short, that the subject stands in no relation whatever to time, Can neither be called in time nor out of time; but that all relations of time are as alien and he- terogeneous in this question, as the relations and attributes of space (north or south, round or square, thick or thin) are to our affections and moral feelings. Let the Reader suppose this, and he will have before him the precise import of the Scriptural doctrine of Original Sin ; or rather of the fact acknowledged in all ages, and recognised, but not originating, in the Christian Scriptures. In addition to this it will be w T ell to remind the inquirer, that the stedfast conviction of the existence, personality, and moral attributes of God, is presup- posed in the acceptance of the Gospel, or required as its indispensable preliminary. It is taken for granted as a point which the hearer had already decided for himself, a point finally settled and put at rest : not by the removal of all difficulties, or by any such increase of insight as enabled him to meet every objection of the Epicurean or the Sceptic with a full and precise answer ; but because he had convinced himself that it was folly as well as presumption in so imperfect a creature to expect it ; and because these difficulties and doubts disappeared at the beam, when tried against the weight and convictive power of the reasons in the other scale. It is, therefore, most unfair to attack Christianity, or any article which the Church has declared a Christian doctrine, by arguments, w T hich, if valid, are valid against all religion. Is there a disputant who scorns a mere postulate, as the basis of any argument in support of the faith; who is too high-minded to beg his ground and will take it by a strong hand ? I et ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 233 him fight it out with the Atheists, or the Mani- cheans ; hut not stoop to pick up their arrows, and then run away to discharge them at Christianity or the Church ! The only true way is to state the doctrine, believed as well by Saul of Tarsus, yet breathing out threaten- tngs and slaughter against the Church of Christ, as by Paul the Apostle, fully preaching the Gospel of Christ. A moral evil is an evil that has its origin in a will. An evil common to all must have a ground common to all. But the actual existence of moral evil we are bound in conscience to admit ; and that there is an evil common to all is a fact ; and this evil must therefore have a common ground. Now this evil ground cannot originate in the Divine Will : it must therefore be referred to the will of man. And this evil ground w T e call original sin. It is a mys- tery, that is, a fact, which we see, but cannot explain; and the doctrine a truth which we apprehend, but can neither comprehend nor communicate. And such by the quality of the subject (namely, a responsible will) it must be, if it be truth at all. A sick man, whose complaint was as obscure as his Bufferings were severe and notorious, w T as thus ad- dressed by a humane stranger: " My poor Friend ! I find you dangerously ill, and on this account only, and having certain information of your being so, and that you have not wherewithal to pay for a physician, I have come to you. Respecting your disease, indeed, I can tell you nothing that you are capable of un- derstanding, more than you know already, or can only be taught by reflection on your own experience. But I have rendered the disease no longer irreme diable. I have brought the remedy with me : and I now offer you the means of immediate relief, w r ith the assurance of gradual convalescence, and a final 234 ATDS TO REFLECTION. perfect cure : nothing more being required on your part, but your best endeavours to follow the prescrip- tions I shall leave with you. It is, indeed, too pro- bable, from the nature of your disease, that you will occasionally neglect or transgress them. But even this has been calculated on in the plan of your cure, and the remedies provided, if only you are sincere and in right earnest with yourself, and have your heart in the work. Ask me not how such a disease can be conceived possible. Enough for the present that you know it to be real : and I come to cure the disease, not to explain it." Now, what if the patient or some of his neighbours should charge this good Samaritan with having given rise to the mischievous notion of an inexplicable dis- ease, involving the honour of the king of the country ; — should inveigh against him as the author and first introducer of the notion, though of the numerous medical works composed ages before his arrival, and by physicians of the most venerable authority, it was scarcely possible to open a single volume without finding some description of the disease, or some lamentation of its malignant and epidemic character; — and, lastly, what if certain pretended friends of this good Samaritan, in their zeal to vindicate him against this absurd charge, should assert that he was a perfect stranger to this disease, and boldly deny that he had ever said or done any thing connected w 7 ith it, or that implied ita existence ? In this apologue or imaginary case, Reader ! you have the true bearings of Christianity on the fact and doctrine of Original Sin. The doctrine (that is, the confession of a known fact) Christianity has only in common with every religion, and with every philo- sophy, in which the reality of a responsible will, and ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. '235 the essential difference between good and evil, have been recognised. Peculiar to the Christian religion are the remedy and (for all purposes but those of a merely speculative curiosity) the solution. By the annunciation of the remedy it affords all the solution which our moral interests require ; and even in that which remains, and must remain, unfathomable, the Christian finds a new motive to walk humbly with the Lord his God. Should a professed believer ask you, whether that, which is the ground of responsible action in your will could in any way be responsibly present in the will of Adam, — answer him in these words : " You, Sir ! can no more demonstrate the negative, than I can conceive the affirmative. The corruption of my will may very warrantably be spoken of as a consequence of Adam's fall, even as my birth of Adam's existence ; as a consequence, a link in the historic chain of instances, whereof Adam is the first. But that it is on account of Adam ; or that this evil principle was, a priori, inserted or infused into my will by the will of another — which is indeed a contradiction in terms, my will in such case being no will — -this is nowhere asserted in Scripture explicitly or by implication." It belongs to the very essence of the doctrine, that in respect of original sin every man is the adequate representative of all men. What wonder, then, that where no inward ground of preference existed, the choice should be determined by outward relations, and that the first in time should be taken as the diagram ? Even in the book of Genesis the word Adam; is distinguished from a proper name by an article before it. It is the Adam, so as to express the genus, not the individual — or rather, perhaps, I should say, as well as the individual. But that the word with its equivalent, the old man, is used 236 AIDS TO REFLECTION. symbolically and universally by St. Paul, (I Cor. xv, 22, 45. Eph. iv. 22. Col. iii. 9. Rom. vi. 6,) is too evident to need any proof. I conclude with this remark. The doctrine of Original Sin concerns all men. But it concerns Christians in particular no otherwise than by its connexion with the doctrine of Redemption ; and with the divinity and divine humanity of the Redeemer, as a corollary or necessary inference from both mysteries. Beware of arguments against Christianity, which cannot stop there, and consequently ought not to have commenced there. Something I might have added to the clearness of the preceding views, if the limits of the Work had permitted me to clear away the several delusive and fanciful assertions respecting the state * of our first parents, their wisdom, science, and angelic faculties, assertions without the slightest ground in Scripture: — or, if consistently with the wants and preparatory studies of those, for whose use this Volume was especially intended, I could have entered into the momentous subject of a spiritual fall or apostasy antecedent to the formation of man — a belief the Scriptural grounds of which are few and of diverse interpretation, but which has been almost universal in the Christian Church. Enough however has been given, I trust, for the Reader to see and (as far as the subject is capable of being understood) to understand this long controverted article, in the sense in which alone it is binding on his faith. Sup- posing him therefore to know the meaning of Original * For a specimen of these Rabbinical dotages, I refer, not to the writings of mystics and enthusiasts, but to the shrewd and witty Dr. South, one of whose most elaborate sermons stands prominent among the many splendid extra- vaganzas on this subject. (See Sermons, II. Gen. i. 27. — Ed.) ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 237 Sin, and to have decided for himself on the fact of its actual existence, as the antecedent ground and occasion of Christianity, we roay now proceed to Christianity itself, as the edifice raised on this ground, that is, to the great constituent article of the faith in Christ, as the remedy of the disease — the doctrine of Redemption. But before I proceed to this great doctrine, let me briefly remind the young and friendly pupil, to whom I would still be supposed to address myself, that in the following Aphorisms the word science is used in its strict and narrowest sense. By a science I here mean any chain of truths which are either absolutely certain, or necessarily true for the human mind, from the laws and constitution of the mind itself. In neither case is our conviction derived, or capable of receiving any addition, from outward experience, or empirical data — that is, matters of fact given to us through the medium of the senses — though these data may have been the occasion, or may even be an indispensable condition, of our reflecting on the former, and thereby becoming conscious of the same. On the other hand, a connected series of conclusions grounded on empirical data, in contra-distinction from science, I beg leave (no better term occurring) in this place and for this purpose to denominate a scheme. APHOKISM XI. In whatever age and country it is the prevailing raind and character of the nation to regard the present life as subordinate to a life to come, and to mark the present state, the world of their senses, by signs, instruments, and mementos of its connexion with a future state and a spiritual world ; — where the mysteries of faith are brought within the hold of 238 AIDS TO REFLECTION. . the people at large, not by being explained away in the vain hope of accommodating them to the average of their understanding, but by being made the objects of love by their combination with events and epochs of history, with national traditions, with the monuments and dedications of ancestral faith and zeal, with memorial and symbolical observances, with the realising influences of social devotion, and above all, by early and habitual association with acts of the will, — there Religion is. There, however obscured by the hay and straw of human will-work, the founda- tion is safe. In that country and under the pre- dominance of such maxims, the National Church is no mere State-institute. It is the state itself in its intensest federal union ; yet at the same moment the guardian and representative of all personal individu- ality. For the Church is the shrine of morality, and in morality alone the citizen asserts and reclaims his personal independence, his integrity. Oar out- ward acts are efficient, and most often possible, only by coalition. As an efficient power, the agent is but a fraction of unity ; he becomes an integer only in the recognition and performance of the moral law* Nevertheless it is most true (and a truth. which cannot with safety be overlooked) that morality, as morality, has no existence for a people. It is either absorbed and lost in the quicksands of prudential calculus, or it is taken up and transfigured into the duties and mysteries of religion. And no wonder : sinco morality (including the personal being, the I am, as its subject) is itself a mystery, and the ground and mppositum of all other mysteries, relatively to man. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION $39 .APHORISM XII. PALEY NOT A MORALIST, Schemes of conduct, grounded on calculations of self-interest, or on the average consequences of actions, supposed to Le general, form a branch of Political Economy, to which let all due honour be given. Their utility is not here questioned. But however estimable within their own sphere such schemes, or any one of them in particular, may be, they do not belong to moral science, to which, both in kind and purpose, they are in all cases foreign, and when substituted, for it, hostile. Ethics, or the science of Morality, does indeed in no wise exclude the consideration of action ; but it contemplates the same in its originating spiritual source, without reference to space, or time, or sensible existence. Whatever springs out of the perfect law of freedom, which exists only by its unity with the will of God, its inherence in the Word of God, and its communion with the Spirit of God — that (according to the principles of moral science) is good — it is light and righteousness and very truth. Whatever seeks t whole law, and yet offend in one point, he is guilty of all. For as the will or spirit, the source and substance of moral good, is one and all in every part ; so must it be the totality, the whole articulated series of jingle acts, taken as unity, that can alone, in the severity of science, be recognised as the proper counterpart and adequate representative of a good will. Is it in this or that limb, or not rather in the whole body, the entire organismus, that the law of Life reflects itself? Much less, then, can the law of the Spirit work in fragments. APHORISM XIII. Wherever there exists a permanent * learned class, having authority, and possessing the respect and con- fidence of the country ; and wherever the science of ethics is acknowledged and taught in this class, as a regular part of a learned education, to its future * A learned order must be supposed to consist of three classes. First, those who are employed in adding to the existing sum of power and knowledge. Second, and most numerous class, those whose office it is to diffuse through the community at large the practical results of science, and that kind and degree of knowledge and cultivation, which for all is requisite or clearly useful. Third, the formers and instructors of the second — in schools, halls, and universities, or through the medium of the press. The second class includes not only the Parochial Clergy, and all others duly ordained to the ministerial office ; but likewise all the members of the legal and medical professions, who have received a learned education under accredited and responsible teachers. fSee the Church and State, p. 45, &c. 3rd edit. — Ed.) OX SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 241 members generally, but as the special study and indispensable ground- work of such as are intended for holy orders ; — there the article of Original Sin will be an axiom of faith in all classes. Among the learned an undisputed truth, and with the people a fact, which no man imagines it possible to deny : and the doctrine, thus inwoven in the faith of all, and coeval with the consciousness of each, will, for each and all, possess a reality, subjective indeed, yet virtually equivalent to that w r hich we intuitively give to the objects of our senses. With the learned this will be the case, because the article is the first — I had almost said spontaneous — product of the application of moral science to history, of which it is the interpreter. A mystery in its own right, and by the necessity and essential character of its subject — (for the will, like the life, in every act and product pre-supposes to itself a past always present, a present that evermore resolves itself into a past) — the doctrine of Original Sin gives to all the other mysteries of religion a common basis, a connec- tion of dependency, an intelligibility of relation, and a total harmony, which supersede extrinsic proof. There is here that same proof from unity of purpose, that same evidence of symmetry, which in the con- templation of a human skeleton flashed conviction on the mind of Galen, and kindled meditation into a hymn of praise. Meanwhile the people, not goaded into doubt by the lessons and examples of their teachers and superiors; not drawn away from the fixed stars of heaven — the form and magnitude of which are the same for the naked eye of the shepherd as for the telescope of the sage— from the immediate truths, I mean of Reason and Conscience, to an exercise to which they have not been trained, — of a faculty i; 242 AIDS TO INFLECTION. which has been imperfectly developed, — on a subject not within the sphere of the faculty, nor in any way amenable to its judgment; — the people will need no arguments to receive a doctrine confirmed by their own experience from within and from without, and intimately blended with the most venerable traditions common to all races, and the traces of which linger in the latest twilight of civilisation. Among the revulsions consequent on the brute bewilderments of a Godless revolution, a great and active zeal for the interests of religion may be one. I dare not trust it, till I have seen what it is that gives religion this interest, till I am satisfied that it is not the interests of this world; necessary and laudable interests, perhaps, but which may, I dare believe, be secured as effectually and more suitably by the prudence of this world, and by this worlds powers and motives. At all events, I find nothing in the fashion of the day to deter me from adding, that the reverse of the preceding — that where religion is valued and patronised as a supplement of Law, or an aid extraordinary of Police ; where moral science is exploded as the mystic jargon of dark ages ; where a lax system of consequences, by which every iniquity on earth may be (and how many have been!) denounced and defended with equal plausibility, is publicly and authoritatively taught as Moral Philosophy ; where the mysteries of religion, and truths supersensual, are either cut and squared for the comprehension of the Understanding, the faculty judging according to sense, or desperately torn asunder from the Reason, nay fanatically opposed to it ; lastly where private * * The Author of the " Statesman's Manual " must be the most inconsistent of men, if he can be justly suspected of a leaning to the Romish Church ; or if it be necessary for ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 243 interpretation is every thing, and the Church nothing — there the mystery of Original Sin will be either rejected, or evaded, or perverted into the monstrous iction of hereditary sin, — guilt inherited; in the mystery of Eedemption metaphors will be obtruded for the reality ; and in the mysterious appurtenants* and symbols of Redemption (regeneration, grace, the Eucharist, and spiritual communion) the realities will be evaporated into metaphors. liini to repeat his fervent Amen to the wish and prayer of our late good old king, that " every adult in the British Empire should be able to read his Bible, and have a Bible to read ! " Nevertheless, it may not be superfluous to declare, that in thus protesting against the license of private interpretation, I do not mean to condemn the exercise or deny the right of individual judgment. I condemn only the pretended right of every individual, competent and incompetent, to interpret Scripture in a sense of his own, in opposition to the judgment of the Church, without knowledge of the originals, or of the languages, the history, customs, opinions, and controversies of the age and country in which they were written ; and where the interpreter judges in ignorance or in contempt of uninterrupted tradition, the unanimous consent of Fathers and Councils, and the universal faith of the Church in all ages. It is not the attempt to form a judgment, which is here called in question ; but the grounds, or rather the no-grounds on which the judgment is formed and relied on. My fixed principle is : that a Christianity without a Church exercising spiritual authority is vanity and dissolution. And my belief is, that when Popery is rushing in on us like an inundation, the nation will find it to be so. I say Popery : for this too I hold for a delusion, that Romanism or Roman Catholicism is separable from Popery. Almost as readily could I suppose a circle without a centre. a 2 244 AIDS TO REFLECTION. APHORISM XIV. As in great maps or pictures you will see the border decorated with meadows, fountains, flowers, and the like, represented in it, but in the middle you have the main design : so among the works of God is it with the fore-ordained redemption of man. All his other works in the world, all the beauty of the crea- tures, the succession of ages, and the things that come to pass in them, are but as the border to this as the mainpiece. But as a foolish unskilful beholder, not discerning the excellency of the principal piece in such maps or pictures, gazes only on the fair border, and goes no farther — thus do the greatest part of us as to this great work of God, the redemp- tion of our personal being, and the re-union of the human with the divine, by and through the divine humanity of the Incarnate Word. APHORISM XV. LUTIIER. It is a hard matter, yea, an impossible thing for thy human strength, whosoever thou art, (without God's assistance,) at such a time when Moses setteth on thee with the Law (see Aphorism XII.), — when the holy Law written in thy heart accuseth and con- demneth thee, forcing thee to a comparison of thy heart therewith, and convicting thee of the incom- patibleness of thy will and nature with Heaven and holiness and an immediate God — that then thou shouldst be able to be of such a mind as if no law nor sin had ever been ! I say it is in a manner impos- sible that a human creature, when he feeleth himself assaulted with trials and temptations, and the con- ON SPIRITUAL HELIGION. 245 science hath to do with God, and the tempted man knoweth that the root of temptation is within him, should obtain such mastery over his thoughts as then to think no otherwise than that from everlasting nothing hath been but only and alone Christ, alto- gether grace and deliverance ! In irrational agents, namely, the brute animals, the will is hidden or absorbed in the law. The law is their nature. In the original purity of a rational agent the uncorrupted will is identical with the law. Nay, inasmuch as a will perfectly identical with the law is one with the Divine Will, we may say, that in the unfallen rational agent the will constitutes the law.* But it is evident that the holy and spi- ritual power and light, which by a prolepsis or antici- pation we have named law, is a grace, an inward perfection, and without the commanding, binding, and menacing character which belongs to a law, acting as a master or sovereign distinct from, and existing, as it were, externally for, the agent who is * In fewer words thus : For the brute animals, their nature is their law: — for what other third law can be imagined, in addition to the law of nature, and the law of reason ] Therefore : in irrational agents the law consti- tutes the will. In moral and rational agents the will con- stitutes, or ought to constitute, the law : I speak of moral agents, unfallen. For the personal will comprehends the idea, as a reason, and it gives causative force to the idea, as a practical reason. But idea with the power of realising the same is a law ; or say : — the spirit comprehends the moral idea, by virtue of its rationality, and it gives to the idea causative power, as a will. In every sense, therefore, it constitutes the law, supplying both the elements of which it consists, namely, the idea, and the realising power. 216 AIDS TO REFLECTION. bound to obey it. Now this is St. Paul's sense of the word, and on this he grounds his whole reasoning. And hence too arises the obscurity and apparent paradoxy of several texts. That the law is a law for you ; that it acts on the will not in it ; that it exer- cises an agency from without, by fear and coercion ; proves the corruption of your will, and presupposes it. Sin in this sense came by the law : for it has its essence, as sin, in that counter-position of the holy principle to the will, which occasions this principle to be a law. Exactly (as in all other points) consonant with the Pauline doctrine is the assertion of John, when — speaking of the re-adoption of the redeemed to be sons of God, and the consequent resumption (I had almost said re-absorption) of the law into the will (vojjlov rikeiov rbv r?/? ZXevOepias, James i. 25,) — he says, For the law ivas given by Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus Christ* That by the law St. Paul meant only the ceremonial law, is a notion that could originate only in utter inattention to the whole strain and bent of the Apostle's argument. APHORISM XYI. LEIGHTON AND COLERIDGE. Christ's death was both voluntary and violent. There was external violence : and that was the accom- paniment, or at most the occasion, of his death. But there was internal willingness, the spiritual will, the will of the Spirit, and this was the proper cause. By this Spirit he was restored from death : neither indeed was it possible for him to be holden of it. Being put to death in the flesh, but quickened by tin Spirit, says St. Peter. But he is likewise declared * Join I 17— Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 247 elsewhere to have died by that same Spirit, which here, in opposition to the violence, is said to quicken him. Thus Heb. ix. 14. Through the eternal Spirit he offered himself. And even from Peter's words, and without the epithet eternal, to aid the interpreta- tion, it is evident that the Spirit, here opposed to the flesh by body or animal life, is of a higher nature ana power than the individual soul, which cannot of itself return to reinhabit or quicken the body. If these points were niceties, and an over refining in doctrine, is it to be believed that the Apostles, John, Peter and Paul, with the author of the Epistle to the Hebrews, would have laid so great a stress on them ? But the true life of Christians is to eye Christ in every step of his life — not only as their rule but as their strength : looking to him as their pattern both in doing and in suffering, and drawing power from him for going through both : being with- out him able for nothing. Take comfort, then, thou that believest ! It is he that lifts up the soul from the gates of death : and he hath said, I mil raise thee up at the last dag. Thou that believest in him, believe him and take comfort. Yea, when thou art most sunk in thy sad apprehensions, and he far off to thy thinking, then is he nearest to raise and comfort thee : as sometimes it grows darkest immediately before day. APHORISM XVII. LEIGHTON AXD COLERIDGE. Would, any of you be cured of that common disease the fear of death ? Yet this is not the right name of the disease, as a mere reference to our armies and navies is sufficient to prove : nor can the fear of death, either as loss of life or pain of dying, be justly S48 AIDS T0 REFLECTION. held a common disease. But would you be cured of the fear and fearful questionings connected with the approach of death ? Look this way, and you shall find more than you seek. Christ, the Word that was from the beginning, and was made flesh and dwelt among men, died. And he, who dying conquered death in his own person, conquered sin and death, which is the wages of sin, for thee. And of this thou mayest be assured, if only thou believe in him, and love him. I need not add, keep his commandments : since where faith and love are, obedience in its three- fold character, as effect, reward, and criterion, follows by that moral necessity which is the highest form of freedom. The grave is thy bed of rest, and no longer the cold bed: for thy Saviour has warmed it, and made it fragrant. If then it be health and comfort to the faithful that Christ descended into the grave, with especial confi- dence may we meditate on his return from thence, quickened by the Spirit : this being to those who are in him the certain pledge, yea, the effectual cause of that blessed resurrection for which they themselves hope. There is that union betwixt them and their Redeemer, that they shall rise by the communication and virtue of his rising : not simply by his power — for so the wicked likewise to their grief shall be raised ; but they by his life as their life. COMMENT ON THE THREE PRECEDING APHORISMS. To the Reader, who has consented to submit his mind to my temporary guidance, and who permits me to regard him as my pupil or junior fellow-student, I continue to address myself. Should he exist only in my imagination, let the bread float on the waters! ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 249 If it be the Bread of Life, it will not have been utterly cast away. Let us pause a moment, and review the road we have passed over since the transit from Religious Morality to Spiritual Religion. My first attempt was to satisfy you, that there is a spiritual principle in man, and to expose the sophistry of the arguments in support of the contrary. Our next step was to clear the road of all counterfeits, by showing what is not the Spirit, what is not spiritual religion. And this was followed by an attempt to establish a difference in kind between religious truths and the deductions of speculative science ; yet so as to prove, that the former are not only equally rational with the latter, but that they alone appeal to reason in the fulness and living reality of their power. This and the state of mind requisite for the formation of right convic- tions respecting spiritual truths, afterwards employed our attention. Having then enumerated the Articles of the Christian Faith peculiar to Christianity, I entered on the great object of the present Work : namely, the removal of all valid objections to these articles on grounds of right reason or conscience. But to render this practicable, it was necessary, first, to present each article in its true Scriptural purity, by exposure of the caricatures of misinterpreters ; and this, again, could not be satisfactorily done till we were agreed respecting the faculty entitled to sit in judgment on such questions. I early foresaw that my best chance (I will not say, of giving an insight into the surpassing worth and transcendant reasonableness of the Christian scheme ; but) of rendering the very question intelligible, depended on my success in determining the true nature and limits of the hu- man Understanding, and in evincing its diversity from Reason, In pursuing this momentous subject. £50 AIDS TO REFLECTION T was tempted in two or three instances into disquisi- tions, which if not beyond the comprehension, were yet unsuited to the taste, of the persons for whom the Work was principally intended. These, however, I have separated from the running text, and cotnpressed into notes. The Reader will at worst, I hope, pass them by as a leaf or two of waste paper, willingly given by him to those for whom it may not be paper wasted. Nevertheless, I cannot conceal that the subject itself supposes, on the part of the Reader, a steadiness in self-questioning, a pleasure in referring to his own inward experience for the facts asserted by the Author, which can only be expected from a person who has fairly set his heart on arriving at clear and fixed conclusions in matters of faith. But where this interest is felt, nothing more than a common capa- city, with the ordinary advantages of education, is required for the complete comprehension both of the argument and the result. Let but one thoughtful hour be devoted to the pages 167— 176. In all that follows, the Reader will find no difficulty in under- standing my meaning, whatever he may have in adopting it. The two great moments of the Christian Religion are, Original Sin and Redemption ; that the ground, this the superstructure of our faith. The former I have exhibited, first, according to the scheme of the Westminster Divines and the Synod of Dort; then, according to the* scheme of a contemporary Arminian * To escape the consequences of this scheme, some Arminian divines have asserted that the penalty inflicted on Adam, and continued in his posterity, was simply thv, loss of immortality — death as the utter extinction of per- sonal being : immortality being regarded by them (and not, I think, without good reason) as a supernatural attribute, and its loss therefore involved in the forfeiture' of super- ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 25 1 divine ; and lastly, in contrast with botli schemes,' I have placed what I firmly believe to be the Scrip- natural graces. This theory has its golden side : and, as a private opinion, is said to have the countenance of more than one dignitary of our Church, whose general orthodoxy is beyond impeachment. For here the penalty resolves itself into the consequence, and this the natural and naturally inevitable consequence of Adam's crime. For Adam, in- deed, it was a positive punishment : a punishment of his guilt, the justice of which who could have dared arraign ? While for the offspring of Adam it was simply a not super- adding to their nature the privilege by which the original man was contradistinguished from the brute creation — a mere negation of which they had no more right to complaii? than any other species of animals. God in this view appears only in his attribute of mercy, as averting by supernatural interposition a consequence naturally inevitable. This is the golden side of the theory. But if we approach to it from the opposite direction, it first excites a just scruple, from the countenance it seems to give to the doctrine of Materialism. The supporters of this scheme do not, I presume, contend that Adam's offspring would not have been born men, but have formed a new species of beasts ! And if not, the notion of a rational and self-conscious soul, perishing utterly with the dissolution of the organised body, seems to require, nay, almost involves, the opinion that tho soul is a quality or accident of the body — a mere harmony resulting from organisation. But let this pass unquestioned. "Whatever else the descendants of Adam might have been without the inter- cession of Christ, yet (this intercession having been effectually made) they are now endowed with souls that are not extin- guished together with the material body. Now unless these divines teach likewise the Romish figment of Purgatory, and to an extent in which the Church of Rome herself w T ould denounce the doctrine as an impious heresy : unless they hold, that a punishment temporary and remedial is the worst evil that the impenitent have to apprehend in a future Rtate ; and that the spiritual death declared and foretold by 252 AIDS TO REFLECTION. tural sense of this article, and vindicated its entire conformity with reason and experience. I now pro ceed to the other momentous article — from the necessitating occasion of the Christian dispensation to Christ, the death eternal where the worm never dies, is neither death nor eternal, but a certain quantum of suffering in a state of faith, hope, and progressive amendment — unless they go these lengths (and the divines here intended are orthodox Churchmen, men who would not knowingly advance even a step on the road towards them) — then I fear that any advantage their theory might possess over the Calvinistic scheme in the article of Original Sin, would be dearly pur- chased by increased difficulties, and an ultra-Calvinistic narrowness in the article of Redemption. I at least find it impossible, with my present human feelings, not to imagine that even in heaven it would be a fearful thing to know, that in order to my elevation to a lot infinitely more desirable than by nature it would have been, the lot of so vast a multi- tude had been rendered infinitely more calamitous ; and that my felicity had been purchased by the everlasting misery of the majority of my fellow men, who, if no redemption had been provided, after inheriting the pains and pleasures of earthly existence during the numbered hours, and the few and evil — evil yet few — days of the years of their mortal life, would have fallen asleep to wake no more, — would have sunk into the dreamless sleep of the grave, and have been as the murmur and the plaint, and the exulting swell and the sharp scream, which the unequal gust of yesterday snatched from the strings of a wind-harp. In another place I have ventured to question the spirit and tendency of Taylor's Work on Repentance.* But I ought to have added, that to discover and keep the true medium in expounding and applying the efficacy of Christ's Cross and Passion, is beyond comparison the most difficult and delicate point of practical divinity — and that which especially needs a guidance from above. * See also " Notes on English Divines," vol. I pp. 247—272. — Ed. ON SPIRITUAL RELIGION. 253 Christianity itself. For Christianity and Redemption are equivalent terms. And here my comment will be comprised in a few sentences : for I confine my views to the one object of clearing this awful mystery from those too current misrepresentations of its nature and import, that have laid it open to scruples and objec- tions, not to such as shoot forth from an unbelieving heart — (against these a sick bed will be a more effec- tual antidote than all the argument in the world) — but to such scruples as have their birth-place in the reason and moral sense. Not that it is a mystery — Aot that it passeth all understanding ; if the doctrine be more than a hyperbolical phrase, it must do so ; — but that it is at variance with the law revealed in the conscience; that it contradicts our moral instincts and intuitions — this is the difficulty which alone is worthy of an answer. And what better way is there of correcting the misconceptions than by laying open the source and occasion of them ? What surer way of removing the scruples and prejudices, to which these misconceptions have given rise, than by pro- pounding the mystery itself — namely, the Redemptive Act, as the transcendant cause of salvation — in the express and definite words in which it was enunciated by the Redeemer Himself? But here, in addition to the three Aphorisms pre- ceding, I interpose a view of Redemption as appro- priated by faith, coincident with Leighton's, though for the greater part expressed in my own words. This I propose as the right view. Then follow a few sentences transcribed from Field (an excellent divine of the reign of James L, of whose work on the Church,- it would be difficult to speak too highly), containing the questions to be solved, and which are * See t( Kotes on English Divines," vol. i.pp. 35 — 64. — Ed, 254 AIDS TO KEFLECTION. numbered as an Aphorism, rather to preserve the uniformity of appearance, than as being strictly such Then follows the Comment : as part and commence- ment of which the Reader will consider the two para- graphs of pp. 158-9, written for this purpose, and in the foresight of the present inquiry: and I entreat him therefore to begin the Comment by re-perusing these. APHORISM XVIII. Stedfast by faith. This is absolutely necessary for resistance to the evil principle. There is no standing out without some firm ground to stand on : and this faith alone supplies. By faith in the love of Christ the power of God becomes ours. When the soul is beleaguered by enemies, weakness on the walls, treachery at the gates, and corruption in the citadel, then by faith she says — Lamb of God 6lain from the foundation of the world ! Thou art my strength ! I look to thee for deliverance ! And thus she overcomes. The pollution [miasma) of sin is precipitated by his blood, the power of sin is con- quered by his Spirit. The Apostle says not — sted- fast by your own resolutions and purposes ; but — stedfast by faith. Nor yet stedfast in your will, but stedfast in the faith. We are not to be looking to, or brooding over ourselves, either for accusation or for confidence, or (by a deep yet too frequent self- delusion) to obtain the latter by making a merit to ourselves of the former. But we are to look to Christ and him crucified. The law that is very nigh to thee, even in thy heart : the law that condemneth and hath no promise ; that stoppeth the guilty past in its swift flight, and maketh it disown its name; the law will accuse thee enough.* Linger not in the * Additional note. — This and one or two other similar ON SPIRITUAL fiEtt&lOK. 255 justice-court listening to thy indictment. Loiter not in waiting to hear the sentence. No, anticipate the passages were written for the purpose of accustoming the young Student to St. Paul's style of thought and expression. The impersonation of the Act is in imitation of the Apostle's impersonations of Sin, Law, &c, and the following remarks may show that they are more than Hebraisms or Figures of Rhetoric. It is not the criminal Deed (= Factum), but the sinful Act (= Facinus) that wounds the Conscience. But the Act is inseparable from its spiritual source. See Aph. XII. It is one with the sinful Will, one therefore with the Agent, the man himself sensu eminenti. As long as the Will remains the same (in theological language- as long as the man is unregenerate) the Act is evermore present in the Will, even when through spiritual lethargy it is not present to the Conscience. It is the Deed only that can be rightly spoken of as the past, id quod factum fuit. Still, however, among the trials and devices of self-delusion, the Act (= the Agent thus abstracted) would fain lose itself in the Deed ; and under the impulse it usurps the name, and transfers to itself the predicates, or proper characters of the Deed, ex. gr. its singleness, its detachoMlity for the imagination, its particularity and above all, its pastness. In the language of the day we should express all this by saying, that the Sinner cheats himself by transferring his attention from the corrupt slate of his Moral Being, to some one or more con* tingent result, product, or symptom, of that state. rfow the Law in the Conscience working remorse, detects and unmasks this imposture, compelling the Act (i. ravissimis opinionibus ea putari men- dacia, quce vel audita nova, vel visa rudia, vel certe supra captum cogitationis (extemporanea turn) ardua videantur : quce si paido accuratius exploraris, non modo compertu evidentia, sed etiam facta facilia, senties* In compliance with the suggestion of a friend, the celebrated conclusion of the fourth book of Paley's Moral and Political Philosophy, referred to in p. 283, of this Volume, is here transplanted for the conve- nience of the Reader : — " Had Jesus Christ delivered no other declaration than the following — The hour is coming, in the which all that are in the grave shall hear his voice, and shall come forth: they that have done good, unto * Apul. Metam. I. — Ed. CONCLUSION. 843 the resurrection of life, and they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation; — he had pro- nounced a message of inestimable importance, and well worthy of that splendid apparatus of prophecy and miracles with which his mission was introduced and attested : a message in which the wisest of man- kind would rejoice to find an answer to their doubts, and rest to their inquiries. It is idle to say, that a future state had been discovered already: — it had been discovered as the Copernican system was ; — it was one guess among many. He alone discovers, who proves ; and no man can prove this point, but the teacher who testifies by miracles that his doctrine comes from God." Psedianus says of Virgil, — Usque adeo expers in- vidice ut siquid erudite dictum inspiceret alterius, non minus gauderet ac si suum esset. My own heart assures me that this is less than the truth : that Virgil would have read a beautiful passage in the work of another with a higher and purer delight than in a work of his own, because free from the appre- hension of his judgment being warped by self-love, and without that repressive modesty akin to shame, which in a delicate mind holds in check a man's own secret thoughts and feelings, when they respect him- self. The cordial admiration with which I peruse the preceding passage as a master-piece of compo- sition would, could I convey it, serve as a measure of the vital importance I attach to the convictions which impelled me to animadvert on the same passage as doctrine. APPENDIX. A. Summary of the Scheme of the Argument to prove the diversity in kind of the Reason and the Under- standing. See p. 167. The position to be proved is the difference in kind of the understanding from the reason. The axiom, on which the proof rests, is : subjects, which require essentially different general definitions, differ in kind and not merely in degree. For difference in degree forms the ground of specific definitions, but not of generic or general. Now reason is considered either in relation to the will and moral being, when it is termed the practical* reason = A: or relatively to the intellective and sciential faculties, when it is termed theoretic or speculative reason = a. In order, therefore, to be compared with the reason, the understanding must in like manner be distinguished into the understanding * The Practical Reason alone is Reason in the full and substantive sense. It is Reason in its own sphere of perfect freedom ; as the source of ideas, which ideas, in their con- version to the responsible Will, become ultimate ends. On the other hand, Theoretic Reason, as the ground of the universal and absolute in all logical conclusion, is rather the light of Reason in the Understanding, and known to be such by its contrast with the contingency and particularity which characterise all the proper and indigenous growths of the Understanding. APPENDIX. 345 as a principle of action, in which relation I call it the adaptive power, or the faculty of selecting and adapting means and medial of proximate ends = B : and the understanding, as a mode and faculty of thought, when it is called reflection = b. Accord- ingly, I give the general definitions of these four : that is, I describe each severally by its essential characters : and I find, that the definition of A differs toto genere from that of B, and the definition of a from that of b. Now subjects that require essentially different defi- nitions do themselves differ in kind. But Understanding and Beason require essentially different definitions. Therefore Understanding and Beason differ in kind. B. What is Instinct ? * As I am not quite of Bonnet's opinion, " that philosophers will in vain torment them- selves to define instinct until they have spent some time in the head of the animal without actually being that animal," I shall endeavour to explain the use of the term. I shall not think it necessary to controvert the opinions which have been offered on this subject, whether the ancient doctrine ofDes Cartes, who sup- posed that animals were mere machines ; or the modern one of Lamark, who attributes instincts to habits impressed upon the organs of animals, by the constant efflux of the nervous fluid to these organs to whicli it has been determined in their efforts to perform certain actions, to which their necessities have given birth. And it will be here premature to offer any refutation of the opinions of those who contend for the identity of this faculty with reason, and maintain that all the * Green's Vital Dynamics, Appendix F. p. 88. See ante p. 191.— JE& 846 APPENDIX. actions of animals are the result of invention and experience ; — an opinion maintained with considerable plausibility by Dr. Darwin. "Perhaps the most ready and certain mode ot coming to a conclusion in this intricate inquiry will be by the apparently circuitous route of determining first, what we do not mean by the word. Now we certainly do not mean, in the use of the term, any act of the vital power in the production or maintenance of an organ : nobody thinks of saying that the' teeth grow by instinct, or that when the muscles are increased in vigour and size in consequence of exercise, it is from such a cause or principle. Neither do we attribute instinct to the direct functions of the organs in pro- viding for the continuance and sustentation of the whole co-organised body. No one talks of the liver secreting bile, or of the heart acting for the propulsion of the blood, by instinct. Some, indeed, have main- tained that breathing, even voiding the excrement and urine, are instinctive operations ; but surely these, as well as the former, are automatic, or at least are the necessary result of the organisation of the parts in and by which the actions are produced. These instances seem to be, if I may so say, below instinct. But again, w^e do not attribute instinct to any actions preceded by a will conscious of its whole purpose, calculating its effects, and predetermining its conse- quences, nor to any exercise of the intellectual powers, of which the whole scope, aim, and end are intellectual. In other terms, no man who values his words will talk of the instinct of a Howard, or of the instinctive operations of a Newton or Leibnitz, in those sublime efforts, which ennoble and cast a lustre, not less on the individuals than on the whole numan race. " To what kind or mode of action shall we then look for the legitimate application of the term 1 In answer APPENDIX. 347 to this query, we may, I think, without fear of the consequences, put the following cases as exemplifying and justifying the use of the term, Instinct, in an appropriate sense. First, when there appears an action, not included either in the mere functions of life, acting within the sphere of its own organismus ; nor yet an action attributable to the intelligent will or reason : yet, at the same time, not referable to any particular organ, we then declare the presence of an Instinct. We might illustrate this in the instance of a bull-calf butting before he has horns, in which the action can have no reference to its internal economy, to the presence of a particular organ, or to an intelli- gent will. Secondly, likewise if it be not indeed included in the first, we attribute Instinct where the organ is present, if only the act is equally anterior to all possible experience on the part of the individual agent, as, for instance, when the beaver employs its tail for the construction of its dwelling ; the tailor-bird its bill for the formation of its pensile habitation ; the spider its spinning organ for fabricating its artfully woven nets, or the viper its poison fang for its defence. And lastly, generally, where there is an act of the whole body as one animal, not referable to a will con- scious of its purpose, nor to its mechanism, nor to a habit derived from experience, nor previous frequent use. Here with most satisfaction, and without doubt of the propriety of the word, we declare an Instinct ; as examples of which, we may adduce the migratory habits of birds, the social instincts of the bees, the construction of their habitations, composed of cells formed with geometrical precision, adapted in capacity to different orders of the society, and forming store- houses for containing a supply of provisions ; not to mention similar instances in wasps, ants, termites : and the endless contrivances for protecting the future progeny. &48 APPENDIX. " But if it be admitted that we have rightly stated the application of the term, what we may ask is con- tained in the examples adduced, or what inferences are we to make as to the nature of Instinct itself, as a source and principle of action 1 We shall, perhaps, best aid ourselves in the inquiry by an example, and let us take a very familiar one of a caterpillar taking its food. The caterpillar seeks at once the plant, which furnishes the appropriate aliment, and this even as soon as it creeps from the ovum ; and the food being taken into the stomach, the nutritious part is separated from the innutritious, and is disposed of for the support of the animal. The question then is, what is contained in this instance of instinct ? In the first place, what does the vital power in the stomach do, if we generalise the account of the process, or express it in its most general terms ? Manifestly it selects and applies appropriate means to an immediate end, prescribed by the constitution ; first of the parti- cular organ, and then of the whole body or organismus. This we have admitted is not instinct. But what does the caterpillar do ? Does it not also select and apply appropriate means to an immediate end prescribed by its particular organisation and constitution 1 But there is something more ; it does this according to circum- stances ; and this we call Instinct. But may there not be still something more involved 1 What shall we say of Huber's humble-bees ? A dozen of these were put under a bell glass along with a comb of about ten silken cocoons, so unequal in height as not to be capable of standing steadily ; to remedy this, two or three of the humble-bees got upon the comb, stretched themselves over its edge, and with their heads down- wards, fixed their forefeet on the table on which the comb stood, and so with their hindfeet kept the comb from falling : when these were weary others took their places. In this constrained and painful posture, fresh APPENDIX. 049 bees relieving their comrades at intervals, and each working in its turn, did these affectionate little insects support the comb for nearly three days ; at the end of which time they had prepared sufficient wax to build pillars with it. And what is still further curious, the first pillars having got displaced, the bees had again recourse to the same manoeuvre. What then is involved in this case ? Evidently the same selection and appropriation of means to an immediate end as before ; but observe ! according to varying circumstances. " And here we are puzzled ; for this becomes Understanding. At least no naturalist, however predetermined to contrast and oppose Instinct to Understanding, but ends at last in facts in which he himself can make out no difference. But are we hence to conclude that the instinct is the same, and identical with the human understanding ? Certainly not ; though the difference is not in the essential of the definition, but in an addition to, or modification of, that which is essentially the same in both. In such cases, namely, as that which we have last adduced, in which instinct assumes the semblance of understanding, the act indi- cative of instinct is not clearly prescribed by the constitution or laws of the animal's peculiar organisa- tion, but arises out of the constitution and previous circumstances of the animal, and those habits, wants, and that predetermined sphere of action and operation which belong to the race, and beyond the limits of which it does not pass. If this be the case, I may venture to assert that I have determined an appro- priate sense for instinct : namely, that it is a power of selecting and applying appropriate means to an imme- diate end, according to circumstances and the changes of circumstances, these being variable and varying; but yet so as to be referable to the general habits, arising out of the constitution and previous circum- 350 APPENDIX. stances of the animal considered not as an individual, but as a race. " We may here, perhaps, most fitly explain the error of those who contend for the identity of Eeason ana Instinct, and believe that the actions of animals are the result of invention and experience. They have, no doubt, been deceived, in their investigation of In- stinct, by an efficient cause simulating a final cause ; and the defect in their reasoning has arisen in conse- quence of observing in the instinctive operations of animals the adaptation of means to a relative end, from the assumption of a deliberate purpose. To this freedom or choice in action and purpose, instinct, in any appropriate sense of the word, cannot apply, and to justify and explain its introduction, we must have recourse to other and higher faculties than any mani- fested in the operations of instinct. It is evident, namely, in turning our attention to the distinguishing character of human actions, that there is, as in the inferior animals, a selection and appropriation of means to ends — but it is (not only according to circumstances, not only according to varying circumstances, but it is) according to varying purposes. But this is an attri- bute of the intelligent will, and no longer even mere understanding. " And here let me observe that the difficulty and delicacy of this investigation are greatly increased by our not considering the understanding (even our own) in itself, and as it would be were it not accompanied with and modified by the co-operation of the will, the moral feeling, and that faculty, perhaps best distin- guished by the name of Eeason, of determining that which is universal and necessary, of fixing laws and principles whether speculative or practical, and of con- templating a final purpose or end. This intelligent will, — having a self-conscious purpose, under the guidance and light of the reason, by which its acts are made APPENDIX. 351 to bear as a whole upon some end in and for itself, and to which the understanding is subservient as an organ or the faculty of selecting and appropriating the means — seems best to account for that progres- siveness of the human race, which so evidently marks an insurmountable distinction and impassable barrier between man and the inferior animals ; but which would be inexplicable, were there no other difference than in the degree of their intellectual faculties. "Man doubtless has his instincts, even in common with the inferior animals, and many of these are the germs of some of the best feelings of his nature. What, amongst many, might I present as a better illustration, or more beautiful instance, than the storge, or maternal instinct 1 But man's instincts are elevated and ennobled by the moral ends and purposes of his being. He is not destined to be the slave of blind impulses, a vessel purposeless, unmeant. He is con- stituted by his moral and intelligent will, to be the first freed being, the master-work and the end of nature ; but this freedom and high office can only co-exist with fealty and devotion to the service of truth and virtue. And though we may even be per- mitted to use the term instinct, in order to designate those high impulses which in the minority of man's rational being, shape his acts unconsciously to ultimate ends, and which in constituting the very character and impress of the humanity reveal the guidance of Provi- dence ; yet the convenience of the phrase, and the want of any other distinctive appellation for an influence de supra, working unconsciously in and on the whole human race, should not induce us to forget that the term instinct Jj 03uy strictly applicable to the adaptive power, as the faulty, even in its highest proper form, of selecting and adapting appropriate means to proxi- mate ends according to varying circumstances, — a 352 APPENDIX. faculty which, however, only differs from human understanding in consequence of the latter being enlightened by reason, and that the principles which actuate man as ultimate ends, and are designed foi his conscious possession and guidance, are best and most properly named Ideas." BRADBURY, AGNEW,